Selected quad for the lemma: power_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
power_n bishop_n hand_n presbyter_n 3,377 5 10.4292 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A68614 The unbishoping of Timothy and Titus. Or A briefe elaborate discourse, prooving Timothy to be no bishop (much lesse any sole, or diocæsan bishop) of Ephesus, nor Titus of Crete and that the power of ordination, or imposition of hands, belongs jure divino to presbyters, as well as to bishops, and not to bishops onely. Wherein all objections and pretences to the contrary are fully answered; and the pretended superiority of bishops over other ministers and presbyters jure divino, (now much contended for) utterly subverted in a most perspicuous maner. By a wellwisher to Gods truth and people. Prynne, William, 1600-1669. 1636 (1636) STC 20476.5; ESTC S114342 135,615 241

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o vnbishoping_a of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n or_o a_o brief_a elaborate_a discourse_n prove_v timothy_n to_o be_v no_o bishop_n much_o less_o any_o sole_a or_o diocaesan_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n nor_o titus_n of_o crete_n and_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n or_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o to_o bishop_n and_o not_o to_o bishop_n only_o wherein_o all_o objection_n and_o pretence_n to_o the_o contrary_n be_v full_o answer_v and_o the_o pretend_a superiority_n of_o bishop_n over_o other_o minister_n and_o presbyter_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la now_o much_o contend_v for_o utter_o subvert_v in_o a_o most_o perspicuous_a manner_n by_o a_o wellwisher_n to_o god_n truth_n and_o people_n matthew_n 15._o 13._o every_o plant_n which_o my_o heavenly_a father_n have_v not_o plant_v shall_v be_v root_v out_o chrysostom_n opus_fw-la imperfectum_fw-la in_o matth._n hom._n 35._o quicunque_fw-la desideraverit_fw-la primatum_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la inveniet_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la confusionem_fw-la ut_fw-la jam_fw-la in_o ter_z seruos_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la de_fw-fr primatu_fw-la certamen_fw-la in_o the_o year_n m.dc.xxxvi_o to_o the_o reader_n christian_n reader_n what_o that_o oracle_n of_o wisdom_n have_v register_v proverb_n 13._o 10._o only_o by_o pride_n come_v contention_n be_v never_o more_o real_o verify_v in_o any_o one_o particular_a then_o in_o the_o prelate_n who_o ambitious_a windy_a tumour_n and_o overswell_a pride_n as_o in_o all_o former_a age_n so_o in_o this_o have_v veritatis_fw-la fill_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n with_o war_n with_o civil_a dissension_n and_o the_o church_n itself_o with_o endless_a schism_n controversy_n contention_n which_o else_o will_v never_o have_v existence_n the_o pretend_a primacy_n of_o the_o great_a pontifical_a bishop_n of_o rome_n what_o tumult_n battle_n war_n treason_n rebellion_n murder_n martyrdom_n have_v it_o engender_v on_o the_o one_o hand_n what_o dispute_v book_n of_o controversy_n and_o paper-battle_n on_o the_o other_o what_o innumerable_a schism_n treatise_n which_o the_o endoubted_a parity_n of_o minister_n and_o bishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la have_v prevent_v have_v the_o prelate_n pretend_a superiority_n by_o divine_a institution_n over_o presbyter_n and_o their_o fellow-minister_n produce_v in_o all_o age_n church_n especial_o in_o our_o own_o which_o from_o the_o first_o glimmering_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o john_n wiclife_n day_n till_o now_o have_v be_v more_o or_o less_o disquiet_v with_o this_o unhappy_a controversy_n which_o be_v rake_v up_o in_o the_o ash_n for_o a_o space_n by_o reason_n of_o our_o bishop_n wave_v of_o their_o divine_a right_n which_o not_o only_o archbishop_n 4._o anselm_n 8._o richardus_fw-la armachanus_fw-la and_o 19_o bishop_n peacock_n of_o old_a but_o likewise_o 973._o bishop_n tonstall_n bishop_n stokesly_n commandment_n bishop_n hooper_n 202._o bishop_n jewel_n 96._o bishop_n alley_n 2._o bishop_n pilkington_n yea_o 389._o archbishop_n whitgift_n himself_o and_o 359._o bishop_n bridges_n to_o omit_v all_o other_o have_v since_o they_o public_o disclaim_v confess_v bishop_n and_o presbyter_n lure_n divino_fw-la to_o be_v allone_n equal_a and_o the_o same_o and_o the_o statute_n of_o 37._o h._n 8._o c._n 17._o 1._o ed._n 6._o c._n 2._o 1._o &_o 2._o mariaec_fw-la 8._o &_o 1_o eliz_n ab_fw-la c._n 1._o for_o ever_o judicial_o in_o full_a parliament_n resolve_v against_o yet_o our_o present_a ambitious_a prelate_n study_v to_o surmount_v their_o predecessor_n not_o only_o in_o worldly_a pomp_n and_o power_n derive_v from_o their_o indulgent_a sovereign_n but_o likewise_o in_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n claim_v from_o god_n himself_o though_o they_o have_v neither_o time_n nor_o care_n to_o preach_v pray_v or_o do_v he_o any_o episcopal_a service_n be_v whole_o take_v up_o with_o secular_a office_n and_o affair_n and_o 16._o unable_a to_o serve_v god_n for_o serve_v his_o incompacible_a enemy_n mamonn_n and_o the_o world_n have_v late_o blow_v abroad_o the_o coal_n and_o resuscitate_v the_o violent_a flame_n of_o this_o contention_n afresh_o by_o a_o new_a ambitious_a claim_n of_o all_o their_o episcopal_a sovereignty_n and_o jurisdiction_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la even_o in_o the_o high_a commission_n court_n itself_o in_o the_o late_a censure_n of_o doctor_n bastwicke_n for_o a_o book_n write_v only_o against_o the_o pope_n and_o italian_a bishop_n without_o any_o reflection_n upon_o they_o as_o all_o man_n then_o conceive_v and_o therefore_o wonder_v at_o till_o their_o magnify_v of_o the_o church_n of_o treatise_n rome_n as_o a_o true_a church_n in_o that_o censure_n of_o he_o and_o some_o late_a license_a pamphlet_n their_o antichristian_a and_o papal_a proceed_n against_o god_n truth_n minister_n ordinance_n and_o the_o late_o authorise_v of_o doctor_n pocklington_n 44._o sunday_n no_o sabbath_n by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n own_o chaplain_n master_n bray_n which_o express_o aver_v that_o our_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n can_v and_o do_v lineal_o derive_v their_o pedigree_n and_o succession_n from_o peter_n and_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v since_o in_o struct_v the_o ignorant_a people_n that_o pope_n italian_n and_o english_a bishop_n be_v in_o truth_n other_o all_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n whelpesof_o the_o same_o litter_n branch_n of_o the_o same_o tree_n and_o our_o present_a prelate_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n own_n lineal_o descend_v son_n so_o as_o they_o can_v not_o but_o be_v sensible_a of_o and_o high_o offend_v if_o not_o actual_o lash_v wound_v with_o their_o father_n scourge_n flagellum_fw-la pontificis_fw-la &_o episcoporum_fw-la latialium_fw-la be_v a_o whip_n for_o they_o as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o italian_a prelate_n now_o because_o in_o that_o late_a censure_n of_o they_o they_o all_o found_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o their_o episcopal_a superintendency_n and_o dominion_n over_o their_o fellow-pres_n byter_n only_o on_o the_o example_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n who_o they_o then_o new_a consecrate_a diocaesan_n bishop_n over_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n 1608._o yearly_a after_o their_o decease_n though_o christ_n and_o paul_n himself_o have_v never_o do_v it_o in_o their_o life_n time_n and_o on_o a_o suppose_a divine_a monopoly_n of_o confer_v order_n and_o impose_v hand_n appropriate_v by_o god_n himself_o to_o diocaesan_n bishop_n distinct_a in_o jurisdiction_n power_n and_o degree_n from_o minister_n and_o presbyter_n i_o have_v therefore_o here_o for_o the_o future_a quie●●●ing_n of_o this_o much_o agitate_a controversy_n confine_v my_o discourse_n within_o the_o list_n of_o such_o question_n not_o former_o full_o debate_v by_o any_o in_o the_o english_a tongue_n that_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o by_o the_o discussion_n whereof_o i_o have_v i_o suppose_v so_o shake_v these_o rot_a pillar_n and_o undermine_v these_o 27._o sandy_a foundation_n of_o their_o high-towring_a overswell_a hierarchy_n as_o that_o i_o have_v leave_v they_o no_o divine_a prop_n or_o groundwork_n to_o support_v it_o long_o so_o as_o it_o must_v now_o certain_o for_o any_o stay_n be_v leave_v it_o in_o scripture_n come_v tumble_v down_o headlong_o to_o the_o very_a ground_n and_o i_o think_v i_o hear_v the_o fall_n of_o it_o already_o sound_v in_o my_o ear_n unless_o with_o speed_n they_o whole_o quit_v these_o false_a foundation_n and_o bottom_n their_o prelacy_n and_o jurisdiction_n only_o on_o his_o majesty_n princely_a favour_n not_o god_n or_o christ_n divine_a institution_n which_o because_o they_o have_v so_o late_o judicial_o disclaim_v in_o open_a court_n and_o even_o at_o this_o present_n execute_v all_o act_n of_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n by_o their_o own_o inherent_a power_n without_o any_o special_a commission_n from_o his_o majesty_n under_o his_o great_a seal_n keep_v their_o court_n visitation_n and_o make_v out_o all_o their_o citation_n process_n excommunication_n probate_a of_o will_n letter_n of_o administration_n etc._n etc._n in_o their_o own_o name_n and_o under_o their_o own_o seal_n as_o if_o they_o be_v absolute_a pope_n and_o monarch_n contrary_a to_o the_o statute_n of_o 25._o h._n 8._o c._n 19_o 26._o h._n 8._o c._n 1._o 37._o h._n 8._o c._n 17._o 1._o ed._n 6._o c._n 2._o 1._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 8._o eliz._n c._n 1._o their_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o their_o high-commission_n itself_o which_o may_v teach_v they_o another_o lesson_n as_o that_o it_o confine_v they_o to_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o majesty_n special_a commission_n in_o his_o name_n and_o under_o his_o seal_n when_o they_o be_v all_o there_o join_v together_o much_o more_o therefore_o when_o they_o be_v divide_v in_o their_o several_a diocese_n and_o because_o they_o have_v 27._o blot_v out_o caesar_n image_n and_o superscription_n his_o arm_n and_o royal_a title_n out_o of_o their_o court_n process_n and_o all_o ecclesiastical_a proceed_n and_o insert_v only_o their_o own_o in_o leive_v thereof_o that_o so_o they_o may_v appear_v to_o all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v no_o long_o
by_o the_o canon_n of_o 1571._o and_o 1603._o to_o set_v in_o order_n and_o provide_v such_o book_n ornament_n and_o necessary_n as_o be_v want_v in_o parish_n church_n and_o see_v they_o well_o repair_v ergo_fw-la churchwarden_n be_v bishop_n for_o titus_n be_v here_o leave_v to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v as_o paul_n have_v appoint_v he_o and_o no_o other_o wise_a tit._n 1._o 5._o 6._o 7._o 8._o 9_o he_o do_v all_o by_o his_o direction_n and_o authority_n not_o his_o own_o there_o be_v nothing_o therefore_o in_o this_o of_o order_v thing_n that_o be_v want_v in_o the_o church_n of_o crete_n which_o savour_v of_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n and_o i_o may_v better_o argue_v hence_o titus_n do_v nothing_o at_o all_o in_o crect_n but_o by_o paul_n special_a appointment_n and_o commission_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v no_o bishop_n or_o if_o a_o bishop_n ergo_fw-la bishop_n shall_v order_v nothing_o in_o their_o bishoprike_n nor_o keep_v any_o visitation_n but_o by_o special_a direction_n &_o commission_n from_o the_o apostle_n bishop_n king_n or_o state_n authorise_v they_o then_o the_o objector_n conclude_v ergo_fw-la he_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o bishop_n archbishop_n yea_o archdeacon_n too_o without_o any_o special_a commission_n from_o the_o apostle_n king_n and_o state_n may_v make_v and_o institute_v what_o order_n constitution_n article_n and_o ceremony_n they_o please_v as_o now_o they_o do_v in_o their_o illegal_a court_n and_o visitation_n keep_v in_o their_o own_o name_n without_o any_o patent_n from_o the_o king_n obj._n 3_o if_o any_o object_n in_o the_o three_o place_n that_o titus_n be_v lest_o to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n in_o crete_n tit._n 1._o 5._o ergo_fw-la he_o be_v a_o bishop_n because_o none_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v elder_n but_o bishop_n since_o none_o ordain_v elder_n in_o crete_n but_o titus_n who_o be_v a_o bishop_n answ_n 3._o i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o be_v as_o bad_a a_o consequence_n as_o the_o former_a and_o a_o mere_a circular_a argumentation_n for_o first_o they_o will_v needs_o prove_v titus_n a_o bishop_n because_o he_o ordain_v elder_n and_o none_o but_o bishop_n can_v ordain_v elder_n and_o then_o next_o they_o prove_v that_o none_o but_o bishop_n can_v ordain_v because_o titus_n forsooth_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o he_o only_o do_v ordain_v elder_n in_o crete_n a_o mere_a circle_n and_o petitio_fw-la principij_fw-la yet_o this_o be_v the_o logic_n of_o our_o great_a rabbi_n prelate_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o proposition_n whereon_o they_o ground_n themselves_o and_o their_o prelacy_n that_o none_o have_v any_o right_a ture_n divino_fw-la to_o ordain_v elder_n or_o minister_n but_o bishop_n and_o that_o quatenus_fw-la bishop_n too_o which_o they_o must_v add_v or_o else_o their_o argument_n be_v unsound_a be_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n and_o mere_a sandy_a foundation_n for_o first_o not_o to_o remember_v how_o moses_n a_o civil_a magistrate_n consecrate_a aaron_n and_o his_o son_n by_o god_n own_o appointement_n levit._fw-la 8._o 5._o to_o 32._o exod._n 29._o 9_o 35._o first_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v ordain_v apostle_n and_o consecrate_a minister_n by_o christ_n himself_o matth._n 28._o 19_o 20._o mark_v 16._o 15._o 16._o john_n 20._o 22._o 23._o 24._o acts._n 1._o 4._o 5._o rom._n 1._o 5._o 2._o cor._n 3._o 6._o to_o who_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n principal_o appertain_v ephes_n 4._o 11._o 12._o 1._o cor._n 12._o 28._o acts._n 20._o 28._o 1._o pet._n 1._o 4._o second_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o church_n acts._n 14._o 23._o c._n 19_o 1._o 6._o 7._o c._n 7._o 6._o yet_o they_o be_v proper_o no_o bishop_n as_o 1465._o all_o learned_a man_n acknowledge_v three_o the_o disciple_n inferior_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n as_o the_o objector_n teach_v ordain_v minister_n and_o elder_n too_o though_o they_o be_v no_o such_o bishop_n as_o the_o objector_n mean_v acts._n 14._o 1._o 2._o 3._o c._n 9_o 10._o to_o 22._o four_o 3._o presbyter_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n ordainea_fw-la elder_n and_o minister_n yea_o timothy_n himself_o be_v make_v a_o minister_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o thus_o do_v they_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o do_v they_o still_o in_o our_o own_o church_n as_o the_o book_n of_o ordination_n itself_o confirm_v by_o 1._o two_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o 35._o canon_n and_o experience_n witness_v this_o do_v they_o in_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n now_o which_o shall_v have_v no_o lawful_a minister_n and_o so_o no_o true_a church_n if_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la appropriate_v only_o to_o bishop_n and_o not_o common_a with_o they_o unto_o other_o minister_n five_o patriarch_n metropolitan_n archbishop_n and_o choral_a bishop_n neither_o of_o which_o be_v proper_o bishop_n in_o the_o objector_n sense_n ordain_v minister_n if_o then_o all_o these_o have_v ordain_v elder_n and_o minister_n though_o no_o bishop_n by_o sufficient_a divine_a authority_n as_o the_o objector_n can_v deny_v of_o the_o 4._o first_o and_o dare_v not_o contradict_v it_o in_o the_o last_o than_o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la belong_v only_a to_o bishop_n as_o bishop_n in_o the_o objector_n sense_n for_o than_o none_o of_o those_o 5._o being_n not_o proper_o such_o bishop_n can_v lawful_o have_v ordain_v minister_n or_o presbyter_n as_o they_o do_v and_o do_v three_o there_o be_v no_o one_o syllable_n in_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n quatenus_fw-la bishop_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o one_o example_n to_o warrant_v it_o we_o read_v of_o apostle_n evangelist_n disciple_n presbyter_n that_o lay_v hand_n on_o other_o to_o ordain_v they_o minister_n but_o of_o bishop_n i_o mean_v distinct_a from_o presbyter_n we_o read_v not_o a_o word_n to_o this_o purpose_n how_o then_o can_v this_o be_v true_a that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n quatenus_fw-la bishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la four_o we_o read_v not_o a_o word_n to_o this_o purpose_n in_o scripture_n of_o any_o bishop_n distinct_a from_o or_o superior_a in_o order_n degree_n and_o dignity_n to_o presbyter_n if_o therefore_o such_o bishop_n themselves_o be_v not_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la the_o power_n of_o ordination_n can_v belong_v to_o they_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la the_o rather_o because_o we_o read_v of_o no_o man_n who_o the_o scripture_n call_v a_o bishop_n ordain_v minister_n admit_v there_o be_v such_o bishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la yet_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v to_o they_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la quatenus_fw-la such_o bishop_n be_v most_o false_a but_o only_o quatenus_fw-la they_o be_v minister_n for_o it_o appertain_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o evangelist_n to_o disciple_n and_o presbyter_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la though_o no_o such_o bishop_n and_o the_o objector_n will_v acknowledge_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o pope_n patriarch_n metropolitan_o and_o archbishop_n though_o they_o neither_o be_v nor_o be_v proper_o such_o bishop_n and_o be_v no_o divine_a but_o mere_a humane_a institution_n therefore_o it_o must_v appertain_v unto_o they_o only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n in_o which_o respect_n they_o all_o accord_n and_o be_v not_o difference_v one_o from_o another_o not_o quatenus_fw-la bishop_n for_o then_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n disciple_n presbyter_n pope_n patriarch_n metropolitan_n and_o archbishop_n be_v not_o proper_o such_o bishop_n can_v not_o lawful_o ordain_v the_o power_n therefore_o of_o ordination_n belong_v to_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n disciple_n presbyter_n and_o other_o as_o well_o as_o to_o bishop_n not_o to_o bishop_n only_o or_o to_o they_o as_o bishop_n but_o as_o minister_n it_o be_v a_o 367._o mere_a ministerial_a act_n inferior_a to_o preach_v administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o baptise_v as_o all_o acknowledge_v it_o can_v be_v no_o good_a evidence_n to_o prove_v titus_n a_o bishop_n now_o because_o this_o power_n of_o ordination_n which_o our_o prelate_n will_v monopolise_v unto_o themselves_o be_v the_o main_a pillar_n whereon_o they_o now_o suspend_v their_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n over_o their_o minister_n i_o shall_v produce_v some_o humane_a authority_n to_o prove_v the_o right_n the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o be_v by_o god_n law_n common_a to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o to_o bishop_n i_o shall_v begin_v with_o counsel_n the_o 4._o 513._o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 3._o about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 418._o prescribe_v this_o form_n of_o ordination_n of_o minister_n when_o a_o minister_n be_v ordain_v the_o bishop_n blessing_n he_o and_o hold_v his_o hand_n upon_o his_o head_n all_o the_o presbyter_n or_o minister_n likewise_o that_o
he_o 34._o to_o consecrate_v aaron_n with_o his_o son_n the_o tabernacle_n and_o altar_n and_o after_o he_o 8._o king_n solomon_n not_o the_o high_a priest_n consecrate_v the_o temple_n altar_n court_n and_o all_o the_o furniture_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o altar_n so_o that_o if_o these_o example_n prove_v any_o thing_n it_o be_v but_o this_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n of_o consecrate_v bishop_n minister_n church_n altar_n etc._n etc._n appertain_v not_o to_o archbishop_n bishop_n pope_n preiste_n minister_n but_o to_o the_o chief_a temporal_a magistrate_n but_o admit_v that_o moses_n be_v a_o priest_n and_o a_o high_a priest_n and_o that_o the_o power_n of_o consecrate_v preiste_n temple_n altar_n appertain_v to_o he_o in_o that_o regard_n yet_o this_o be_v no_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o right_n and_o power_n of_o ordination_n shall_v belong_v to_o bishop_n only_o and_o that_o for_o these_o three_o reason_n first_o because_o the_o aaronicall_a priesthood_n be_v 10._o utter_o extinct_a and_o abolish_v by_o christ_n as_o mere_o typical_a and_o ceremonial_a and_o so_o all_o ●he_v appurtenance_n thereunto_o belong_v second_o because_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v no_o emblem_n type_n or_o resemblance_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v many_o changeable_a mortal_a but_o 3._o only_o of_o christ_n our_o true_a high_a priest_n who_o be_v but_o one_o and_o remain_v a_o high_a priest_n forever_o without_o succession_n or_o change_n so_o that_o this_o allusion_n prove_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v minister_n to_o belong_v original_o to_o none_o but_o 10._o christ_n our_o 20._o high_a priest_n chief_a shepherd_n and_o 4._o bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n as_o the_o 25._o scripture_n express_o resolve_v and_o ministerial_o secondary_o to_o 3._o every_o minister_n of_o christ_n as_o his_o ambassador_n instrument_n and_o vicegerent_n three_o because_o the_o office_n and_o power_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v different_a distinct_a yea_o incompatible_a one_o with_o the_o other_o and_o the_o manner_n of_o ordination_n of_o minister_n and_o deacon_n under_o the_o law_n different_a from_o that_o under_o the_o gospel_n as_o the_o 12._o scripture_n and_o 502._o all_o author_n joint_o witness_v the_o one_o of_o they_o therefore_o can_v be_v no_o solid_a or_o convince_a argument_n to_o make_v good_a the_o authority_n jurisdiction_n or_o practice_n of_o other_o so_o that_o this_o council_n and_o constitution_n make_v nothing_o at_o all_o against_o the_o divine_a right_n and_o title_n of_o presbyter_n to_o ordain_v or_o for_o the_o bishop_n sole_a monopoly_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o any_o divine_a charter_n from_o christ_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n final_o neither_o of_o these_o counsel_n or_o constitution_n simple_o debar_v minister_n from_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n on_o other_o together_o with_o the_o bishop_n which_o they_o too_o ever_o practise_v and_o be_v authorize_v to_o do_v both_o by_o god_n himself_o and_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 3._o but_o from_o lay_v on_o hand_n and_o ordain_v minister_n of_o themselves_o alone_o without_o the_o bishop_n who_o can_v ordain_v or_o lie_v hand_n on_o any_o minister_n by_o virtue_n of_o these_o constitution_n without_o they_o since_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o himself_o alone_o can_v impose_v hand_n on_o any_o minister_n without_o their_o assistance_n or_o consent_n nor_o they_o without_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o right_n of_o ordination_n be_v not_o whole_o and_o original_o vest_v in_o the_o bishop_n by_o any_o divine_a or_o humane_a right_n but_o in_o both_o the_o 299._o council_n of_o aquisgran_n or_o aken_n under_o ludovicus_n pius_fw-la an._n 816._o c._n 8._o out_o of_o isidor_n hispalensis_n de_fw-fr ecclesiasticis_fw-la officiis_n l._n 2._o c._n 7._o determine_v thus_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n be_v commit_v to_o presbyter_n as_o they_o be_v to_o bishop_n for_o they_o be_v over_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v consort_n with_o bishop_n in_o the_o confection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o likewise_o also_o in_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n and_o in_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v and_o only_o the_o ordination_n and_o consecration_n of_o clerk_n be_v reserve_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n or_o bishop_n because_o of_o his_o authority_n lest_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n challenge_v or_o exercise_v by_o many_o shall_v dissolve_v concord_n and_o engender_v scandal_n for_o paul_n the_o apostle_n call_v elder_n and_o priest_n by_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o acts._n 20._o 28._o phil._n 1._o 1._o 1._o tim._n 3._o d._n rabanus_n maurus_n de_fw-fr instit_n clericorum_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 6._o write_v thus_o that_o presbyter_n although_o they_o be_v preiste_n yet_o they_o have_v not_o attain_v the_o top_n or_o high_a degree_n of_o priesthood_n because_o they_o can_v sign_n the_o forehead_n with_o chrism_n nor_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n neither_o can_v they_o ordain_v clerk_n in_o sacred_a order_n which_o be_v reserve_v to_o bishop_n for_o unity_n and_o concord_n sake_n the_o epistle_n the_o 7._o gradibus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la in_o the_o neinth_n tom_n of_o jeromes_n work_n aver_v in_o express_a term_n that_o the_o ordination_n of_o clerk_n and_o consecration_n of_o virgin_n be_v reserve_v only_o to_o the_o high-preist_n or_o bishop_n for_o his_o great_a honour_n and_o tertullian_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la c._n 17._o write_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n who_o be_v the_o bishop_n have_v the_o right_a of_o give_v baptism_n after_o he_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n yet_o not_o without_o the_o bishop_n authority_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o church_n by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o bishop_n have_v not_o the_o sole_a executive_a power_n of_o ordination_n by_o any_o divine_a right_n or_o institution_n of_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o syllable_n either_o in_o these_o or_o other_o counsel_n or_o father_n but_o only_a by_o canon_n and_o humane_a constitution_n make_v by_o bishop_n themselves_o to_o advance_v their_o own_o honour_n power_n and_o dignity_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o right_n of_o ordination_n remain_v still_o in_o minister_n and_o belong_v to_o bishop_n only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n by_o divine_a right_n not_o as_o they_o be_v bishop_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o 300._o 9_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o aken_n take_v out_o of_o isidor_n de_fw-fr eccles_n officiis_n l._n 2._o c._n 6._o where_o writing_n of_o bishop_n ordination_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o the_o original_n thereof_o they_o use_v this_o expression_n which_o 4._o h._n rabanus_n maurus_n likewise_o have_v but_o that_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n a_o praecessoribus_n dei_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la by_o the_o preiste_n of_o god_n their_o predecessor_n be_v a_o ancient_a constitution_n for_o the_o holy_a 28._o patriarch_n isaac_n lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o jacob_n bless_v he_o and_o 48._o jacob_n in_o like_a manner_n give_v a_o benediction_n to_o his_o son_n etc._n etc._n where_o the_o council_n and_o father_n both_o affirm_v that_o even_o bishop_n themselves_o be_v ordain_v by_o priest_n or_o presbyter_n not_o bishop_n their_o predecessor_n therefore_o the_o right_n and_o power_n of_o ordain_v minister_n and_o bishop_n too_o belong_v to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o to_o bishop_n only_o as_o presbyter_n not_o bishop_n and_o so_o can_v no_o way_n advance_v they_o in_o jurisdiction_n order_n or_o degree_n above_o minister_n the_o popish_a 965._o council_n of_o trent_n sessio_fw-la 23._o de_fw-fr sacramento_n ordinis_fw-la c._n 4._o determine_v that_o bishop_n be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n and_o that_o they_o can_v confer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n ordain_v minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o do_v many_o other_o thing_n which_o those_o inferior_a order_n have_v no_o power_n to_o do_v and_o can._n 7._o de_fw-fr sacramento_n ordinis_fw-la if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o bishop_n be_v not_o superior_a to_o preiste_n or_o that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n or_o confirmation_n or_o that_o this_o power_n which_o they_o have_v be_v common_a to_o they_o with_o presbyter_n or_o that_o the_o order_n confer_v by_o they_o without_o the_o consent_n or_o call_n of_o the_o secular_a power_n be_v void_a let_v he_o be_v anathema_n loe_o here_o this_o council_n appropriate_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n only_o to_o bishop_n by_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v common_a to_o they_o with_o minister_n and_o in_o this_o regard_n make_v bishop_n superior_a in_o degree_n to_o minister_n yet_o not_o by_o any_o divine_a right_n or_o institution_n of_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n but_o only_a by_o humane_a and_o canonical_a as_o the_o 7._o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o ord._n chemnitius_n well_o observe_v for_o in_o the_o same_o 968._o session_n de_fw-fr
reformatione_fw-la can._n 7._o 8._o it_o enjoin_v that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a canon_n when_o minister_n or_o deacon_n be_v to_o be_v ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n call_v to_o he_o the_o preiste_n and_o other_o prudent_a man_n skilful_a of_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o exercise_v in_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n shall_v diligent_o inquire_v and_o examine_v before_o they_o the_o stock_n person_n age_n institution_n manner_n doctrine_n and_o faith_n of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v and_o that_o those_o order_n shall_v be_v public_o confer_v and_o celebrate_v in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n be_v call_v to_o and_o present_a at_o it_o or_o if_o in_o any_o other_o place_n or_o church_n of_o the_o diocese_n praesenti_fw-la clero_fw-la loci_fw-la the_o clergy_n of_o the_o place_n be_v present_a 67._o pope_n anacletus_fw-la and_o the_o etc._n canon_n law_n have_v long_o before_o that_o time_n ordain_v that_o priest_n and_o deacon_n shall_v be_v ordain_v by_o their_o own_o bishop_n ita_fw-la ut_fw-la cives_fw-la &_o alij_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la assensum_fw-la praebent_fw-la so_o as_o the_o citizen_n and_o other_o preiste_n assent_v thereunto_o which_o they_o usual_o do_v and_o aught_o to_o do_v as_o gratian_n with_o usisunt_fw-la other_o prove_v at_o large_a so_o that_o though_o this_o council_n and_o the_o other_o canon_n and_o constitution_n debar_v presbyter_n and_o minister_n from_o the_o act_n and_o exercise_v of_o ordination_n which_o yet_o they_o ever_o use_v and_o practice_v as_o assistant_n to_o the_o bishop_n who_o can_v ordain_v none_o but_o by_o their_o assent_n since_o they_o ought_v to_o join_v with_o they_o in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n yet_o they_o deprive_v they_o not_o of_o their_o inherent_a right_n nor_o yet_o of_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o as_o assistant_n to_o the_o bishop_n which_o they_o have_v ever_o use_v i_o pass_v now_o from_o these_o counsel_n and_o constitution_n to_o the_o father_n who_o jump_v in_o judgement_n with_o they_o it_o be_v true_a that_o 1._o s._n hierome_n 75._o epiphanius_n *_o isidor_n hispalensis_n 414_o ambrose_n 101._o augustine_n 86._o leo_n and_o ‡_o other_o affirm_v that_o bishop_n only_o in_o their_o time_n do_v use_v to_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n and_o that_o presbyter_n may_v do_v all_o thing_n that_o bishop_n do_v except_o the_o confer_v of_o order_n and_o some_o other_o 7._o trifle_a toy_n as_o consecrate_v of_o altar_n church_n virgin_n chrism_n etc._n etc._n not_o warrant_v by_o god_n word_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o determine_v that_o the_o right_n and_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n by_o divine_a institution_n and_o appointment_n that_o presbyter_n have_v no_o right_n at_o all_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o confer_v order_n or_o that_o they_o may_v not_o do_v it_o in_o any_o case_n but_o they_o express_o aver_v the_o contrary_a for_o as_o they_o do_v join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n forecited_a so_o in_o s._n ambrose_n his_o time_n in_o egypt_n if_o the_o bishop_n be_v absent_a the_o presbyter_n use_v to_o consign_v 1._o and_o confer_v order_n as_o this_o 4._o father_n testify_v and_o 101._o s._n augustine_n record_v that_o in_o alexandria_n and_o throughout_o all_o egypt_n if_o the_o bishop_n be_v want_v the_o presbyter_n do_v consecrate_v and_o give_v order_n hence_o aërius_n as_o 75._o epiphanius_n report_v his_o word_n reason_v in_o this_o manner_n what_o be_v a_o bishop_n to_o a_o presbyter_n one_o differ_v nothing_o from_o the_o other_o it_o be_v one_o order_n say_v he_o one_o honour_n and_o one_o dignity_n imponit_fw-la manus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la 135._o ita_fw-la etiam_fw-la presbyter_n the_o bishop_n impose_v his_o hand_n or_o ordain_v minister_n so_o likewise_o do_v the_o presbyter_n the_o bishop_n baptize_v so_o also_o do_v the_o presbyter_n the_o bishop_n sit_v in_o a_o throne_n so_o also_o do_v the_o presbyter_n and_o he_o allege_v that_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o a_o bishop_n 14._o neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o which_o thou_o have_v receive_v by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n epiphanius_n there_o deny_v not_o direct_o that_o presbyter_n than_o do_v use_v to_o ordain_v but_o demand_n how_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o a_o presbyter_n to_o ordain_v not_o have_v imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o the_o election_n of_o minister_n or_o to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v equal_a with_o a_o bishop_n a_o false_a and_o miserable_a shift_n since_o all_o 609._o history_n father_n author_n counsel_n testify_v that_o in_o that_o age_n presbyter_n have_v always_o their_o voice_n in_o the_o elelection_n yea_o their_o hand_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n and_o deacon_n s._n hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n on_o zeph._n c._n 2._o tom._n 5._o p._n 218._o d._n write_v express_o sacerdotes_fw-la and_o that_o priest_n and_o presbyter_n who_o give_v baptism_n and_o imprecate_v the_o lord_n advent_v to_o the_o eucharist_n make_v also_o the_o oil_n of_o chrism_n manus_n imponunt_n impose_v hand_n instruct_v the_o catechumeny_n levit_fw-la as_o et_fw-la alios_fw-la constitwnt_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la ordain_v levites_n and_o other_o priest_n therefore_o presbyter_n in_o s._n hieronymus_n time_n ordain_v minister_n deacon_n and_o lay_v on_o hand_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n yea_o 53._o anastatius_fw-la in_o the_o life_n of_o pope_n pelagius_n the_o first_o record_n that_o this_o pope_n an._n christi_fw-la 555._o for_o want_n of_o three_o bishop_n to_o ordain_v he_o be_v ordain_v pope_n by_o john_n bishop_n of_o perusia_n and_o bonus_n bishop_n of_o florence_n and_o andrea_n presbyter_n de_fw-fr hostia_fw-la and_o andrew_n elder_a or_o minister_n of_o hostia_fw-la which_o luitprandius_n the_o vitis_n pontificum_fw-la p._n 84._o and_o albo_n floriacensis_fw-la in_o his_o life_n p._n 140._o likewise_o testify_v loe_o here_o a_o presbyter_n or_o ordinary_a minister_n ordain_v not_o only_o another_o elder_n but_o a_o bishop_n yea_o a_o pope_n and_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o a_o bishop_n 731._o the_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a can._n 4._o the_o first_o council_n of_o arelat_n can._n 21._o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 12._o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n ●9_n the_o council_n of_o aphricke_n can._n 16._o the_o council_n of_o rhegium_n an._n 472_o the_o council_n of_o arausica_fw-la can._n 21._o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n act._n 13._o p._n 187._o with_o sundry_a pope_n decree_n ordain_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v a_o bishop_n but_o by_o three_o bishop_n at_o least_o and_o that_o a_o consecration_n make_v only_o by_o two_o bishop_n shall_v be_v void_a and_o so_o this_o pope_n no_o lawful_o ordain_v pope_n rule_v this_o presbyter_n supply_v the_o place_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o his_o consecration_n and_o his_o ordination_n good_a and_o valid_a by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n though_o invalid_a and_o a_o mere_a nullity_n by_o the_o canon_n 302._o an._n 1390._o about_o wicklif_n time_n there_o arise_v in_o england_n certain_a bold_a clerk_n who_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o make_v new_a presbyter_n and_o clerk_n and_o confer_v order_n like_o bishop_n teach_v likewise_o that_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o same_o power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n as_o bishop_n be_v whereupon_o they_o lay_v hand_n on_o many_o and_o ordain_v divers_a minister_n who_o affirm_v likewise_o that_o they_o have_v equal_a and_o the_o selfsame_o ecclesiastical_a power_n with_o bishop_n which_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o wicklife_n and_o the_o waldensis_n which_o doctrine_n of_o they_o be_v true_a but_o their_o practice_n discommend_v yet_o the_o minister_n thus_o ordain_v by_o they_o their_o ordination_n hold_v lawful_a by_o god_n law_n yea_o and_o their_o ordination_n of_o other_o in_o those_o time_n in_o darkness_n and_o persecution_n when_o no_o wickilvist_n lollard_n or_o other_o orthodox_n professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n can_v be_v admit_v into_o order_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o age_n unless_o they_o will_v subscribe_v to_o their_o popish_a assertion_n as_o some_o of_o our_o prelate_n now_o will_v admit_v none_o to_o receive_v order_n unless_o they_o will_v first_o subscribe_v to_o such_o private_a position_n and_o ceremony_n as_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o establish_a doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o mean_n whereof_o many_o godly_a man_n be_v keep_v from_o the_o ministry_n and_o though_o 14._o chrysostome_n primasius_n theodoret_n ambrose_n rabanus_n maurus_n oecumenius_n theophilact_fw-mi haymo_n with_o some_o other_o interpret_v that_o of_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o by_o the_o lay_v on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o che_fw-mi presbytery_n to_o be_v mean_v either_o of_o paul_n himself_o or_o of_o the_o senate_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o
of_o such_o who_o have_v apostolical_a authority_n or_o of_o bishop_n and_o not_o of_o the_o bare_a presbyter_n because_o say_v they_o presbyter_n to_o wit_n according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o their_o though_o not_o of_o former_a time_n can_v not_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n but_o only_a apostle_n or_o bishop_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o so_o much_o as_o once_o asffirme_v that_o they_o can_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n ordain_v deacon_n &_o ordinary_a minister_n or_o that_o they_o ought_v by_o god_n law_n and_o divine_a institution_n to_o be_v ordain_v only_o by_o bishop_n yea_o 14._o theophilact_fw-mi on_o that_o text_n write_v thus_o behold_v a_o wonderful_a thing_n see_v how_o much_o the_o imposition_n sacerdotalium_fw-la manwm_fw-la of_o sacerdotal_a or_o priest_n hand_n can_v do_v a_o clear_a demonstration_n that_o priest_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o bishop_n only_o as_o they_o be_v priest_n not_o bishop_n have_v power_n of_o lay_v on_o hand_n and_o 14._o theodoret_n thus_o gloss_v the_o text_n here_o he_o call_v those_o the_o presbytery_n who_o have_v attain_v apostolical_a grace_n for_o say_v he_o divine_a scripture_n have_v call_v those_o who_o be_v honour_v in_o israel_n elder_n the_o father_n therefore_o confess_v that_o presbyter_n and_o elder_n may_v and_o do_v in_o some_o case_n and_o place_n ordain_v and_o consecrate_v minister_n without_o the_o bishop_n and_o likewise_o join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o all_o place_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n grant_v that_o the_o right_n of_o ordination_n and_o impose_v hand_n belong_v to_o they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o to_o bishop_n the_o rather_o because_o this_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o 28._o father_n that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n by_o god_n law_n and_o institution_n be_v both_o one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o so_o continue_v till_o long_a after_o the_o apostle_n time_n therefore_o their_o power_n of_o ordination_n the_o same_o with_o they_o neither_o do_v the_o papist_n dissent_v from_o this_o 3_o aquinas_n write_v that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v only_o to_o those_o who_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v double_a one_o which_o be_v make_v by_o deacon_n the_o other_o by_o minister_n and_o because_o he_o add_v not_o the_o three_o by_o bishop_n he_o plain_o intimate_v that_o the_o ordination_n make_v by_o minister_n and_o bishop_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o that_o bishop_n ordain_v only_o as_o bishop_n not_o as_o minister_n 14._o ca●etan_n on_o that_o text_n say_v that_o paul_n relate_v that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n saint_n acerdotalis_fw-la officii_fw-la be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o sacerdotal_a or_o priest_n office_n not_o the_o bishop_n and_o faber_n in_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o write_v that_o presbyter_n do_v use_v to_o lay_v their_o hand_n on_o the_o head_n of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v purge_v or_o make_v complete_a minister_n pour_v forth_o holy_a prayer_n i_o know_v indeed_o that_o 1._o aquinas_n and_o other_o schoolman_n hold_v that_o it_o belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n to_o confer_v holy_a order_n yet_o he_o and_o 6._o durandus_fw-la grant_n that_o this_o be_v not_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o divine_a right_n orinstitution_n but_o only_o by_o humane_a constitution_n and_o canon_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o more_o excellent_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n that_o the_o bishop_n have_v over_o and_o above_o minister_n and_o for_o order_n sake_n yea_o they_o both_o affirm_v that_o presbyter_n do_v and_o aught_o to_o join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n the_o rhemist_n in_o their_o annotation_n on_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o confess_v that_o when_o a_o priest_n be_v ordain_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o elder_n present_a do_v together_o with_o the_o bishop_n even_o at_o this_o day_n among_o they_o and_o have_v ancient_o use_v heretofore_o to_o lay_v hand_n on_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v cite_v the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 3._o for_o proof_n thereof_o and_o the_o cite_v canonist_n with_o some_o 5._o schoolman_n grant_v that_o priest_n and_o minister_n by_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n and_o licence_n may_v without_o a_o bishop_n concurrent_n ordain_v deacon_n and_o minister_n but_o a_o mere_a layman_n or_o one_o that_o be_v no_o minister_n can_v do_v it_o a_o clear_a proof_n that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n appertain_v to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n rest_v more_o in_o the_o minister_n person_n then_o in_o the_o pope_n grant_n or_o licence_n else_o why_o may_v not_o a_o lay_v man_n as_o well_o as_o a_o minister_n grant_v order_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o pope_n licence_n or_o why_o shall_v minister_n join_v with_o bishop_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n but_o to_o pass_v from_o these_o to_o the_o reform_a church_n beyond_o the_o sea_n we_o know_v that_o most_o of_o they_o have_v no_o bishop_n that_o all_o their_o minister_n and_o deacon_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o common_a election_n of_o the_o people_n and_o magistrate_n and_o imposition_n of_o the_o senate_n or_o college_n of_o minister_n hand_n yet_o none_o of_o our_o prelate_n have_v be_v so_o impudent_o shameless_a as_o to_o deny_v their_o ordination_n and_o minister_n to_o be_v lawful_a or_o their_o practice_n to_o be_v dissonant_n from_o the_o scripture_n or_o they_o to_o be_v true_a church_n what_o their_o writer_n have_v determine_v concern_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n incident_a to_o minister_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o to_z bishop_n only_o as_o minister_n and_o servant_n to_o the_o church_n not_o lord_n these_o ensue_a passage_n will_v declare_v 23._o joannes_n lukawitz_n in_o his_o confession_n of_o the_o ●aborites_n against_o rokenzana_n c._n 13._o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n write_v thus_o they_o confess_v that_o the_o confer_v of_o order_n only_o by_o bishop_n and_o that_o they_o have_v more_o effectual_a authority_n of_o his_o nature_n then_o other_o minister_n be_v not_o from_o any_o faith_n or_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n sed_fw-la ex_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la habetur_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o from_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o 445._o waldenses_n and_o toborites_n that_o the_o power_n of_o give_v order_n and_o impose_v hand_n belong_v to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o that_o bishop_n and_o minister_n by_o god_n law_n where_o both_o one_o and_o no_o bishop_n great_a than_o any_o presbyter_n in_o honour_n or_o jurisdiction_n 2_o melanchton_n write_v that_o if_o bishop_n and_o ordinary_n be_v enemy_n of_o the_o church_n or_o will_v not_o give_v order_n yet_o the_o church_n retain_v their_o right_n for_o wheresoever_o there_o be_v a_o church_n there_o be_v a_o right_a of_o administer_a the_o gospel_n wherefore_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v retain_v the_o right_n of_o call_v elect_a and_o ordain_v minister_n and_o this_o right_n be_v a_o gift_n give_v to_o the_o church_n which_o no_o humane_a authority_n can_v take_v from_o the_o church_n as_o paul_n witness_v in_o the_o four_o of_o the_o ephesian_n where_o he_o say_v when_o he_o ascend_v upon_o high_a he_o give_v gift_n unto_o man_n and_o he_o reckon_v doctor_n and_o pastor_n among_o the_o proper_a gift_n of_o the_o church_n and_o add_v that_o such_o be_v give_v for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n where_o therefore_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o right_a of_o elect_v and_o ordain_v minister_n one_o thing_n have_v make_v a_o difference_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n to_o wit_n ordination_n because_o it_o be_v institute_v that_o one_o bishop_n may_v ordain_v in_o many_o church_n but_o see_v that_o by_o god_n law_n there_o be_v not_o divers_a degree_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o a_o ordination_n make_v by_o a_o pastorin_n his_o church_n be_v ratify_v by_o god_n law_n marsilius_n patavinus_n in_o his_o defensoris_fw-la pacis_fw-la pars_fw-la 2._o 〈◊〉_d 15._o 17._o affirm_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v minister_n belong_v not_o to_o priest_n and_o bishop_n but_o to_o the_o magistrate_n and_o people_n where_o he_o be_v to_o be_v a_o minister_n that_o every_o priest_n by_o divine_a authority_n may_v confer_v all_o sacrament_n and_o give_v order_n as_o well_o as_o any_o bishop_n and_o that_o every_o priest_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v and_o promote_v any_o believer_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o the_o priesthood_n he_o prepare_v he_o ministerial_o but_o god_n simple_o and_o immediate_o impress_v the_o sacerdotal_a power_n or_o character_n the_o original_a property_n of_o ordain_v minister_n be_v only_o in_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 14._o
hyperius_n thus_o second_v he_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o the_o election_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o deacon_n to_o approve_v the_o person_n to_o the_o multitude_n or_o people_n be_v make_v by_o the_o elder_n in_o who_o this_o authority_n rest_v whence_o it_o be_v here_o add_v with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o priesthood_n or_o as_o it_o be_v more_o significant_o and_o plain_o express_v in_o the_o greek_a with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n which_o signify_v the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o elder_n and_o they_o agree_v that_o he_o who_o be_v elect_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o many_o shall_v be_v commend_v and_o approve_a as_o a_o fit_a person_n by_o this_o external_a sign_n which_o be_v thus_o back_v by_o 14._o hemingius_n the_o imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n be_v the_o right_n of_o ordination_n which_o the_o senate_n or_o eldership_n of_o the_o church_n or_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v administer_v 1._o pezelius_n thus_o jump_v in_o judgement_n with_o they_o heretofore_o the_o authority_n of_o ordination_n be_v grant_v to_o bishop_n at_o least_o by_o a_o humane_a institution_n yet_o so_o that_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o church_n may_v not_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o election_n of_o minister_n and_o that_o the_o other_o presbyter_n shall_v be_v present_a at_o the_o examination_n and_o lay_v their_o hand_n together_o on_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v for_o so_o gratian_n can._n presbyter_n distinct._n 23._o when_o a_o presbyter_n be_v ordain_v the_o bishop_n blessing_n he_o and_o hold_v his_o hand_n upon_o his_o head_n all_o the_o presbyter_n likewese_n that_o be_v present_a shall_v hold_v their_o hand_n upon_o his_o head_n close_o to_o the_o bishop_n hand_n which_o tend_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o the_o presbyter_n likewise_o may_v retain_v the_o right_n of_o conscerate_v or_o ordain_v to_o themselves_o and_o that_o so_o they_o may_v manifest_v that_o what_o ever_o the_o bishop_n shall_v do_v that_o he_o do_v it_o not_o in_o his_o own_o name_n alone_o but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o dei_fw-la musculu●_n harp_n on_o the_o same_o string_n thus_o it_o must_v plain_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n heretofore_o be_v elect_v the_o people_n be_v present_a and_o consent_v and_o they_o be_v ordain_v and_o confirm_v of_o the_o elder_n by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n this_o form_n of_o elect_a minister_n be_v apostolical_a and_o lawful_a which_o he_o there_o prove_v at_o large_a the_o noble_a 11._o mornay_n lord_n of_o tlessis_n sing_v the_o same_o tune_n in_o these_o word_n these_o thing_n be_v thus_o prove_v we_o add_v that_o the_o right_n of_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n and_o ordain_v minister_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o presbyter_n and_o this_o very_o concern_v the_o apostle_n day_n be_v more_o apparent_a then_o that_o it_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o doubt_v of_o for_o say_v paul_n to_o timothy_n neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n that_o be_v of_o the_o presbyter_n or_o elder_n moreover_o timothy_n himself_o ordain_v elder_n and_o since_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o presbyter_n be_v name_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o function_n if_o the_o bishop_n challenge_v this_o right_n to_o themselves_o from_o the_o scripture_n the_o presbyter_n also_o may_v do_v the_o same_o but_o if_o they_o deny_v it_o to_o presbyter_n in_o this_o very_a thing_n they_o a●rogate_v this_o right_n to_o themselves_o and_o very_o this_o be_v a_o good_a form_n of_o argument_n in_o the_o church_n in_o ancient_a time_n 25._o he_o can_v baptise_v he_o can_v consecrate_v and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n which_o be_v the_o great_a a_o more_o honourable_a action_n because_o sacrament_n of_o undoubted_a truth_n of_o high_a note_n and_o use_v therefore_o he_o may_v lay_v on_o hand_n which_o be_v less_o now_o in_o ordain_v elder_n the_o bishop_n lay_v his_o hand_n on_o the_o head_n of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o elder_n likewise_o do_v lay_v on_o their_o hand_n as_o appear_v out_o of_o many_o place_n of_o the_o decree_n the_o 502._o centurie_n writer_n inform_v we_o that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o assume_v to_o themselves_o the_o power_n of_o elect_v and_o ordain_v elder_n and_o deacon_n but_o they_o have_v the_o suffrage_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o they_o and_o the_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n with_o they_o do_v ordain_v and_o lay_v hand_n on_o they_o which_o they_o prove_v by_o acts._n 6._o and_o 13._o and_o 14._o and_o 19_o and_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o and_o in_o the_o 2._o and_o three_o century_n follow_v c._n 6._o they_o affirm_v that_o bishop_n and_o minister_n be_v thus_o elect_v and_o ordain_v the_o elder_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n lay_v their_o hand_n on_o they_o the_o 2._o confession_n of_o saxony_n c._n 12._o resolve_n express_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n to_o ordain_v minister_n lawful_o elect_v and_o call_v the_o 618._o synod_n of_o petrocomia_n artic._n 6._o in_o poland_n decree_v that_o no_o patron_n shall_v receive_v or_o admit_v any_o minister_n to_o teach_v in_o his_o church_n unless_o he_o be_v lawful_o ordain_v and_o send_v by_o the_o superintendent_o and_o the_o elder_n and_o have_v a_o good_a and_o certain_a testimonial_a from_o they_o and_o the_o synod_n of_o wlodislania_n artic._n 8._o and_o 12._o determine_v thus_o the_o ordination_n and_o mission_n of_o minister_n into_o certain_a place_n to_o work_v in_o the_o lord_n vineyard_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o superintendent_o and_o to_o the_o minister_n and_o elder_n their_o colleague_n not_o to_o bishop_n georgius_n major_a in_o his_o enar_n in_o philip._n 1._o 1._o write_v thus_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o presbyter_n paul_n witness_v in_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o where_o he_o say_v neglect_v not_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o etc._n etc._n by_o the_o lay_n on_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n that_o be_v of_o the_o order_n or_o colleadge_v of_o the_o presbyter_n by_o which_o it_o be_v show_v that_o timothy_n be_v call_v and_o ordain_v to_o his_o episcopal_a function_n by_o the_o presbyter_n therefore_o at_o that_o time_n presbyter_n have_v the_o right_n of_o ordination_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o difference_n between_o they_o to_o these_o i_o may_v add_v master_n john_n calvin_n piscator_fw-la marlorat_n and_o most_o other_o protestant_a commentator_n on_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o zanchius_n destatu_fw-la peccati_fw-la &_o legal_a in_o quartum_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la chemnitius_n loc._n com._n pars_fw-la 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n c._n 4._o and_o examen_fw-la concilij_fw-la tridentini_n pars_fw-la 2._o de_fw-fr sacram._n ordinis_fw-la pag._n 224._o 225._o etc._n etc._n where_o he_o prove_v at_o large_a that_o the_o election_n and_o vocation_n of_o minister_n belong_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o the_o people_n as_o well_o as_o the_o clergy_n that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n s●ith_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o that_o timothy_n have_v a_o grace_n and_o a_o gift_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n neither_o say_v he_o only_a of_o my_o hand_n but_o he_o add_v also_o of_o the_o presbytery_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v think_v no_o difference_n whether_o any_o one_o be_v ordain_v either_o by_o the_o apostle_n or_o by_o the_o elder_n a●tonius_n sadeel_n respon_n ad_fw-la repetita_fw-la turriani_n sophism_n pars_fw-la 2._o locus_fw-la 12._o beza_n de_fw-fr diversis_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la gradibus_fw-la junius_n contr._n 5._o l._n c._n 3._o n._n 3._o chamierus_n paustratia_n cathol_n tom._n 2._o de_fw-la oecum_fw-la pontif._n c._n 6._o with_o sundry_a 11._o other_o writer_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n who_o aver_v and_o prove_v against_o the_o papist_n and_o jesuit_n that_o the_o power_n of_o election_n and_o ordination_n of_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n belong_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o congregation_n and_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o minister_n elder_n and_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o to_o bishop_n and_o to_z bishop_n only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n but_o he_o that_o have_v handle_v and_o prove_v this_o most_o large_o and_o full_o of_o all_o other_o be_v gersonius_fw-la bucerus_n de_fw-fr gubernation_n ecclesiae_fw-la be_v a_o answer_n to_o bishop_n downham_n sermon_n of_o bishop_n p._n 261._o 262._o 283._o 287._o 292._o 294._o 299._o 310._o 318._o to_o 367._o 464._o 465._o 493._o 498._o 499._o 524._o 618._o where_o this_o point_n be_v so_o learned_o and_o substantial_o
prove_v by_o scripture_n reason_n and_o author_n of_o all_o sort_n that_o none_o which_o read_v these_o passage_n of_o he_o can_v ever_o hereafter_o call_v this_o into_o question_n more_o have_v run_v thus_o long_o abroad_o i_o now_o in_o the_o last_o place_n return_v to_o our_o own_o church_n and_o writer_n the_o book_n of_o ordination_n of_o minister_n ratify_v by_o two_o several_a act_n of_o parliament_n namely_o 3._o ed._n 6._o c._n 12._o and_o 8._o eliz._n c._n 1._o and_o subscribe_v to_o by_o all_o our_o prelate_n and_o minister_n 37._o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o 36._o canon_n as_o contain_v nothing_o in_o it_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n express_o order_n that_o when_o minister_n be_v ordain_v all_o the_o minister_n present_v at_o the_o ordination_n shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n together_o with_o the_o bishop_n on_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v and_o the_o 35._o can._n make_v in_o convocation_n by_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n an._n 1603._o prescribe_v that_o the_o bishop_n before_o he_o admit_v any_o person_n to_o holy_a order_n shall_v diligent_o examine_v he_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o those_o minister_n that_o shall_v assist_v he_o at_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o if_o the_o say_a bishop_n have_v any_o lawful_a impediment_n he_o shall_v cause_v the_o say_a minister_n careful_o to_o examine_v every_o such_o person_n so_o to_o be_v order_v provide_v that_o they_o who_o shall_v assist_v the_o bishop_n in_o examine_v and_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n shall_v be_v of_o his_o cathedral_n church_n if_o they_o may_v be_v convenient_o have_v or_o other_o sufficient_a preacher_n of_o the_o same_o diocese_n to_o the_o number_n of_o three_o at_o the_o least_o and_o according_a to_o this_o book_n of_o ordination_n and_o canon_n when_o ever_o any_o minister_n be_v ordain_v all_o the_o minister_n there_o present_a join_v with_o and_o assist_v the_o bishop_n in_o la_v on_o of_o hand_n on_o every_o one_o that_o be_v ordain_v so_o that_o both_o by_o the_o establish_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o power_n of_o lay_v on_o hand_n and_o right_a of_o ordination_n be_v common_a to_o every_o of_o our_o minister_n as_o well_o as_o to_o our_o bishop_n who_o as_o they_o can_v ordain_v or_o lay_v hand_n on_o any_o without_o the_o bishop_n so_o the_o bishop_n can_v ordain_v or_o lay_v hand_n on_o no_o minister_n without_o they_o so_o that_o the_o power_n and_o right_n of_o ordination_n rest_v equal_o in_o they_o both_o with_o what_o face_n or_o shadow_v then_o of_o truth_n our_o prelate_n now_o can_v or_o dare_v to_o monopolise_v this_o privilege_n to_o themselves_o alone_o against_o this_o book_n of_o ordination_n their_o own_o canon_n subscription_n yea_o their_o own_o and_o their_o predecessor_n common_a practice_n to_o the_o contrary_n which_o perchance_o their_o overgreat_a employment_n in_o temporal_a business_n &_o secular_a state_n affair_n have_v cause_v they_o whole_o to_o forget_v at_o least_o not_o to_o consider_v let_v the_o indifferent_a judge_n but_o to_o pass_v from_o they_o to_o some_o of_o our_o learned_a writer_n alcuvinus_fw-la de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la officiis_n c._n 37._o write_v that_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n be_v ancient_o and_o in_o his_o time_n too_o veritatis_fw-la elect_v by_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n and_o that_o they_o be_v present_a at_o their_o ordination_n and_o consent_n to_o it_o that_o the_o bishop_n consecration_n in_o his_o day_n use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wherein_o two_o bishop_n hold_v the_o gospel_n or_o new_a testament_n over_o the_o head_n of_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v and_o a_o three_o utter_v the_o blessing_n after_o which_o the_o other_o bishop_n present_v lay_v their_o hand_n on_o his_o head_n be_v but_o a_o novelty_n not_o find_v in_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n nor_o in_o the_o roman_a tradition_n and_o then_o he●_n prove_v out_o of_o hieroms_n epistle_n to_o evagrius_n and_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o first_o to_o titus_n that_o the_o ancient_a consecration_n of_o bishop_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o their_o election_n and_o inthronization_n by_o the_o elder_n who_o choose_v out_o one_o of_o their_o company_n for_o a_o bishop_n and_o place_v he_o in_o a_o high_a seat_n than_o the_o rest_n and_o call_v he_o a_o bishop_n without_o further_a ceremony_n just_a as_o a_o army_n make_v a_o general_n or_o as_o if_o the_o deacon_n shall_v choose_v one_o from_o among_o they_o and_o call_v he_o a_o archdeacon_n have_v no_o other_o consecration_n but_o such_o as_o the_o other_o deacon_n have_v be_v advance_v above_o other_o only_o by_o the_o election_n of_o his_o fellow-brethren_n without_o other_o solemnity_n by_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n presbyter_n do_v not_o only_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n before_o there_o be_v any_o bishop_n elect_v and_o institute_v but_o likewise_o that_o after_o bishop_n be_v institute_v they_o ordain_v and_o consecrate_a bishop_n as_o well_o as_o elder_n and_o deacon_n and_o that_o the_o sole_a ordination_n and_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o primitive_a and_o pure_a time_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o presbyter_n bare_a election_n and_o inthronization_n of_o they_o without_o more_o solemnity_n so_o that_o the_o other_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n now_o use_v be_v but_o novelty_n anselm_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n on_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o expound_v these_o word_n with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n in_o this_o manner_n he_o call_v that_o the_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n which_o be_v make_v in_o his_o ordination_n which_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v in_o the_o presbytery_n because_o that_o by_o this_o imposition_n of_o hand_n he_o receive_v a_o eldership_n that_o be_v a_o bishopric_n for_o a_o bishop_n be_v oftentimes_o call_v a_o presbyter_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o presbyter_n a_o bishop_n which_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o three_o chapter_n on_o phil._n 1._o 1._o tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o he_o prove_v to_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n so_o that_o by_o his_o resolution_n the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o power_n of_o ordain_v elder_n and_o bishop_n belong_v to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o to_o bishop_n our_o english_a apostle_n 11._o john_n wickliff_n and_o his_o coaetanean_a 8._o richard_n fitzralphe_n otherwise_o call_v richardus_fw-la armachanus_fw-la archbishop_n and_o primate_n of_o ardmagh_n in_o ireland_n if_o we_o believe_v either_o their_o own_o write_n or_o 57_o thomas_n walden_n who_o recite_v their_o opinion_n argument_n and_o take_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pain_n though_o in_o vain_a to_o refute_v they_o affirm_v and_o teach_v first_o that_o in_o the_o defect_n of_o bishop_n any_o one_o that_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a priest_n be_v sufficient_a to_o administer_v any_o sacrament_n or_o sacramental_n whatsoever_o either_o find_v in_o scripture_n or_o add_v since_o second_o that_o one_o who_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a priest_n may_v ordain_v another_o and_o that_o he_o who_o be_v ordain_v only_o by_o a_o simple_a priest_n ought_v not_o to_o doubt_v of_o his_o presbytership_n or_o to_o be_v ordain_v again_o so_o as_o he_o right_o perform_v his_o clericall_a office_n because_o the_o ordination_n come_v from_o god_n who_o supply_v all_o defect_n three_o that_o mere_a priest_n may_v ordain_v priest_n deacon_n and_o bishop_n too_o even_o as_o the_o inferior_a priest_n among_o the_o jew_n do_v ordain_v and_o consecrate_v the_o high_a priest_n as_o bishop_n consecrate_v archbishop_n and_o the_o cardinal_n the_o pope_n four_o that_o the_o power_n of_o order_n be_v equal_a and_o the_o same_o in_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o that_o by_o their_o very_a ordination_n they_o have_v power_n give_v they_o by_o christ_n to_o administer_v all_o sacrament_n alike_o therefore_o to_o confer_v order_n and_o confirm_v child_n which_o be_v the_o less_o as_o well_o as_o to_o baptise_v administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o great_a five_o that_o christ_n sit_v in_o heaven_n have_v give_v the_o power_n of_o consecrate_v and_o ordain_v priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o confirmation_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n which_o bishop_n now_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o to_o just_a presbyter_n and_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v but_o of_o late_a time_n even_o above_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n reserve_v and_o appropriate_v to_o bishop_n only_o by_o their_o own_o canon_n and_o constitution_n to_o increase_v their_o caesarian_a pomp_n and_o pride_n and_o 1_o waldensis_n himself_o who_o undertake_v to_o refute_v these_o proposition_n say_v express_o that_o no_o man_n hitherto_o ●ath_v deny_v that_o god_n in_o a_o urgent_a case_n of_o necessity_n give_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n to_o any_o one_o that_o be_v
but_o a_o mere_a priest_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o want_n or_o defect_n of_o bishop_n all_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n archdeacon_n and_o clergy_n of_o england_n in_o their_o book_n entitle_v the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n subscribe_v with_o all_o their_o hand_n and_o dedicate_v to_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o an._n 1537._o chapter_n of_o order_n and_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o himself_n in_o his_o book_n style_v a_o necessary_a erudition_n for_o any_o christian_a man_n set_v out_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o statute_n of_o 32._o h._n 8._o c._n 26._o approve_a by_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a and_o netherhowse_n of_o parliament_n prefaced_a with_o the_o king_n own_o royal_a epistle_n and_o publish_v by_o his_o special_a command_n in_o the_o year_n 1543._o in_o the_o chapter_n of_o order_n express_o resolve_v that_o priest_n and_o bishop_n by_o god_n law_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o excommunication_n belong_v equal_o to_o they_o both_o learned_a martin_n bucer_n in_o his_o book_n of_o recall_v and_o bring_v into_o use_n again_o the_o lawful_a ordination_n of_o minister_n and_o of_o the_o office_n of_o pastor_n in_o his_o scripta_fw-la anglicana_n write_v here_o in_o england_n p._n 254._o 255._o 259._o 291._o 292._o 293._o and_o on_o math._n 16._o lay_n down_o these_o conclusion_n first_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n rest_v principal_o and_o original_o in_o christ_n himself_o prince_n of_o pastor_n second_o that_o this_o power_n be_v secondary_o and_o derivate_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n who_o consent_n be_v requisite_a in_o the_o election_n and_o ordination_n of_o minister_n three_o that_o the_o actual_a power_n of_o ordination_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v as_o well_o to_o presbyter_n as_o to_o bishop_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o lay_n on_o hand_n and_o that_o timothy_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o presbyter_n four_o that_o bishop_n and_o minister_n have_v the_o power_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o they_o only_o instrumental_o not_o original_o as_o servant_n to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n fif●ly_o that_o the_o examination_n and_o ordination_n of_o minister_n ought_v to_o be_v make_v public_o in_o the_o church_n where_o they_o be_v elect_v to_o be_v minister_n before_o all_o the_o congregation_n all_o which_o he_o prove_v by_o sundry_a scripture_n and_o history_n peter_n martyr_v his_o coaetaman_n regius_n professor_n in_o the_o ●niversity_n of_o oxford_n in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o 6._o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 2._o king_n 2._o 23._o and_o in_o his_o common_a place_n print_v at_o london_n cum_fw-la privilegio_fw-la an._n 1576._o class_n 4._o loc._n 1._o sect._n 23._o p._n 849._o write_v thus_o the_o papist_n can_v object_v grievous_a sin_n against_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o they_o oppose_v only_o some_o slight_n that_o i_o say_v not_o ridiculous_a thing_n they_o say_v that_o our_o pastor_n have_v no_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o thence_o they_o endeavour_v to_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v repute_v just_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o congregation_n which_o be_v teach_v and_o govern_v by_o they_o be_v no_o true_a church_n but_o conventicle_n of_o revolter_n and_o this_o they_o say_v as_o if_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v so_o necessary_a that_o without_o it_o there_o can_v be_v no_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n when_o notwithstanding_o moses_n consecrate_a aaron_n his_o brother_n and_o his_o child_n offer_v divers_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n on_o which_o no_o man_n former_o have_v lay_v on_o hand_n likewise_o john_n the_o baptist_n bring_v in_o a_o new_a right_n of_o baptism_n and_o administer_v it_o to_o the_o jew_n when_o as_o yet_o no_o hand_n have_v be_v lay_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o himself_o have_v be_v baptize_v of_o no_o man_n paul_n also_o call_v by_o christ_n in_o his_o journey_n do_v not_o present_o go_v to_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o may_v lay_v hand_n upon_o he_o but_o he_o teach_v in_o arabia_n for_o 3._o year_n space_n and_o minister_v to_o the_o church_n before_o that_o he_o go_v up_o to_o the_o apostle_n his_o antecessor_n as_o himself_o witness_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n we_o reject_v not_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n but_o retain_v it_o in_o many_o church_n which_o if_o we_o receive_v not_o from_o their_o bishop_n we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o it_o for_o they_o will_v not_o confer_v it_o on_o we_o unless_o we_o will_v depart_v from_o sound_a doctrine_n and_o likewise_o bind_v ourselves_o by_o o●th_n to_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n in_o which_o word_n he_o resolve_v first_o that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v no_o such_o essential_a part_n of_o a_o minister_n ordination_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v omit_v and_o that_o those_o who_o be_v elect_v and_o lawful_o call_v to_o the_o ministry_n by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o people_n be_v minister_n lawful_o call_v and_o ordain_v without_o this_o ceremony_n second_o that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v to_o minister_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o that_o those_o who_o be_v ordain_v minister_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n where_o they_o have_v no_o bishop_n only_o by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n of_o other_o minister_n be_v lawful_o ordain_v three_o that_o this_o position_n that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n that_o those_o be_v no_o true_a minister_n who_o be_v ordain_v without_o a_o bishop_n be_v but_o a_o vain_a ridiculous_a popish_a cavil_v our_o prelate_n therefore_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a to_o ground_v both_o their_o own_o and_o titus_n his_o episcopal_a hierarchy_n upon_o it_o learned_a 5._o doctor_n whitaker_n write_v against_o bellarmine_n say_v that_o this_o text_n of_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o make_v very_o much_o against_o the_o adversary_n for_o from_o this_o place_n we_o understand_v that_o tim●thy_n receive_v imposition_n of_o hand_n from_o the_o elder_n who_o at_o that_o time_n govern_v the_o church_n by_o a_o common_a council_n and_o against_o 55._o duraeus_n he_o argue_v thus_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n bucer_n and_o other_o be_v presbyter_n and_o presbyter_n by_o god_n law_n be_v the_o same_o with_o bishop_n therefore_o they_o may_v lawful_o ordain_v other_o presbyter_n doctor_n fulke_n in_o his_o confutation_n of_o the_o rhemish_a testament_n annot._n on_o tit._n 1._o sect._n 2._o and_o doctor_n willet_n in_o his_o synopsis_fw-la papismi_fw-la the_o 5._o general_a controversy_n quaest_n 3._o part_n 2._o write_v thus_o although_o in_o the_o scripture_n a_o bishop_n and_o a_o elder_n be_v of_o one_o order_n and_o authority_n in_o preach_v the_o word_n etc._n etc._n yet_o in_o government_n by_o ancient_a use_n of_o speech_n he_o be_v only_o call_v a_o bishop_n which_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n call_v chief_a in_o government_n to_o who_o the_o ordination_n or_o consecration_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v always_o principal_o commit_v not_o that_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v only_o to_o he_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o elder_n that_o be_v present_a at_o ordination_n do_v lay_v on_o their_o hand_n or_o else_o the_o bishop_n do_v lay_v on_o his_o hand_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o rest_n we_o differ_v from_o the_o papist_n in_o this_o they_o affirm_v that_o not_o principal_o and_o chief_o but_o sole_o and_o whole_o the_o right_a of_o consecrate_v and_o give_v order_n appertain_v unto_o bishop_n but_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o give_v order_n we_o say_v that_o though_o it_o be_v chief_o in_o the_o apostle_n yet_o the_o pastor_n and_o elder_n together_o with_o they_o lay_v on_o their_o hand_n acts._n 13._o 3._o 4._o and_o as_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o his_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n 2._o tim._n 1._o 6._o so_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o the_o eldership_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o and_o the_o rhemist_n on_o that_o place_n mislike_v not_o the_o practice_n of_o their_o church_n that_o their_o priest_n do_v lay_v on_o their_o hand_n together_o with_o the_o bishop_n upon_o his_o head_n that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v what_o else_o do_v this_o signify_v but_o that_o they_o have_v some_o interest_n in_o ordain_v together_o with_o the_o bishop_n the_o 4._o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 3._o decree_v thus_o let_v all_o the_o priest_n that_o be_v present_a hold_v their_o hand_n next_o to_o the_o bishop_n hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v again_o can._n 14._o of_o the_o same_o council_n the_o bishop_n must_v not_o give_v order_n but_o in_o the_o presence_n and_o assembly_n of_o the_o clergy_n by_o this_o than_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o imposition_n of_o hand_n do_v not_o whole_o and_o
sole_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n see_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o elder_n be_v wont_a to_o lay_v on_o their_o hand_n likewise_o or_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o rest_n so_o that_o the_o elder_n be_v not_o exclude_v doctor_n field_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o the_o church_n c._n 27._o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n where_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o durandus_fw-la and_o other_o papist_n that_o the_o power_n of_o consecration_n and_o order_n be_v not_o great_a in_o bishop_n then_o in_o any_o other_o minister_n that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v reserve_v to_o bishop_n not_o by_o any_o divine_a but_o humane_a constitution_n only_o rather_o for_o to_o honour_v the_o bishop_n priestly_a place_n then_o for_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v do_v by_o any_o other_o and_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o confusion_n and_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n conclude_v that_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n as_o when_o bishop_n be_v extinguish_v by_o death_n or_o fall_v into_o heresy_n or_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o ordain_v man_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o gospel_n of_o christ_n sincere_o and_o the_o like_a than_o minister_n only_o may_v ordain_v other_o minister_n without_o any_o bishop_n assistance_n and_o master_n cartwright_n in_o his_o confutation_n of_o the_o rhemish_a testament_n on_o the_o 1._o tim._n 1._o 14._o sect._n 18._o and_o on_o tit._n 1._o sect._n 2._o prove_n both_o by_o the_o rhemist_n own_o practice_n and_o confession_n by_o the_o 4._o council_n of_o carthage_n cite_v by_o they_o and_o the_o history_n of_o eradius_fw-la his_o ordination_n who_o succeed_v augustine_n to_o which_o six_o elder_n as_o well_o as_o two_o bishop_n be_v call_v and_o by_o the_o text_n of_o timothy_n itself_o that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v to_o elder_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n which_o he_o manifest_v to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o by_o divine_a institution_n final_o acute_a and_o learned_a doctor_n ames_n in_o his_o bellarminus_n enervatus_fw-la tom._n 2._o l._n 3._o c._n 2._o of_o the_o vocation_n and_o ordination_n of_o minister_n sect._n 4._o etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr ordinatione_fw-la conclude_v thus_o against_o bellarmine_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o ordination_n vocation_n and_o election_n of_o bishop_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n first_o that_o it_o can_v belong_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la to_o popish_a bishop_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n in_o degree_n because_o they_o themselves_o be_v only_o vel_fw-la juris_fw-la vel_fw-la injuriae_fw-la humanae_fw-la of_o humane_a right_n or_o rather_o injury_n not_o of_o divine_a institution_n second_o that_o the_o very_a act_n of_o ordination_n belong_v to_o divine_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o presbyter_n in_o a_o church_n well_o order_v three_o that_o as_o to_o the_o right_a force_n and_o virtue_n which_o it_o have_v in_o constitute_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n it_o always_o appertain_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o the_o celebration_n of_o matrimony_n receive_v all_o its_o force_n and_o virtue_n from_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o party_n marry_v four_o that_o in_o corrupt_a and_o collapse_a state_n of_o the_o church_n the_o ministry_n and_o order_n fail_v the_o very_a act_n of_o ordination_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o minister_n may_v in_o such_o a_o case_n be_v lawful_o execute_v by_o the_o people_n five_o that_o the_o act_n of_o ordination_n be_v attribute_v to_o presbyter_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v not_o ordain_v ordinary_a minister_n but_o by_o the_o concurrence_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n acts._n 14._o 23._o six_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o common_a counsel_n of_o the_o presbyter_n before_o there_o be_v any_o bishop_n the_o very_a first_o bishop_n be_v not_o ordain_v by_o bishop_n which_o then_o be_v not_o but_o by_o minister_n seaventh_o that_o all_o the_o counsel_n degree_n and_o testimony_n of_o father_n object_v to_o the_o contrary_a prove_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o act_n and_o right_n of_o ordination_n partly_o by_o custom_n and_o partly_o by_o humane_a decree_n be_v give_v to_o the_o chief_a presbyter_n or_o bishop_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n not_o belong_v to_o they_o by_o any_o divine_a right_n eight_o that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o pastor_n no_o more_o than_o a_o coronation_n to_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o king_n or_o the_o celebration_n of_o a_o marriage_n to_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o marriage_n nine_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n according_a to_o the_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n be_v not_o a_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o of_o simple_a office_n which_o presbyter_n may_v perform_v without_o any_o command_n or_o jurisdiction_n ten_o that_o the_o papist_n themselves_o teach_v that_o baptism_n confer_v by_o any_o christian_a though_o a_o lay_v man_n or_o woman_n be_v good_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o that_o a_o simple_a presbyter_n by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o popish_a doctor_n may_v administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n or_o confer_v any_o of_o the_o great_a order_n and_o that_o all_o the_o pontifician_n teach_v with_o unanimous_a consent_n that_o a_o bishop_n once_o consecrate_v although_o he_o be_v a_o simoniack_a heretic_n excommunicate_a person_n or_o the_o like_a may_v yet_o firm_o ordain_v other_o therefore_o a_o fortiori_fw-la godly_a presbyter_n or_o the_o people_n and_o church_n of_o christ_n may_v lawful_o confer_v order_n without_o the_o help_n or_o concurrence_n of_o a_o bishop_n which_o authority_n of_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v slight_v as_o schismatical_a or_o erroneous_a it_o be_v consonant_n to_o the_o doctrine_n both_o of_o our_o own_o and_o other_o protestant_a writer_n church_n and_o this_o book_n of_o his_o print_a by_o authority_n in_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n no_o long_o since_o then_o anno_fw-la 1629._o it_o be_v evident_a then_o by_o this_o whole_a cloud_n of_o witness_n to_o omit_v other_o that_o the_o power_n and_o right_n of_o ordination_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o say_v 4._o gratian_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o prayer_n over_o a_o man_n and_o as_o 337._o aquinas_n write_v signify_v only_o the_o confer_v of_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v by_o christ_n and_o not_o that_o minister_n not_o bishop_n who_o be_v here_o but_o minister_n give_v this_o grace_n and_o so_o as_o proper_a for_o minister_n as_o bishop_n both_o by_o divine_a and_o humane_a right_n and_o practice_v belong_v to_o presbyter_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n therefore_o bishop_n can_v be_v paramount_n presbyter_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n in_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o this_o regard_n neither_o will_v this_o power_n of_o ordination_n prove_v timothy_n or_o titus_n bishop_n as_o they_o now_o vain_o surmise_v hence_o therefore_o i_o retort_v the_o objection_n in_o this_o manner_n against_o the_o opposite_n that_o power_n or_o authority_n which_o be_v common_a by_o divine_a right_n and_o institution_n to_o minister_n and_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n can_v neither_o prove_v timothy_n or_o titus_n to_o be_v bishop_n or_o bishop_n to_o be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n or_o minister_n in_o jurisdiction_n order_n dignity_n or_o degree_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o humano_fw-la but_o the_o power_n of_o authority_n of_o ordain_v presbyter_n minister_n and_o deacon_n be_v such_o as_o the_o premise_n undeniable_o evidence_n therefore_o it_o can_v neither_o prove_v timothy_n or_o titus_n to_o be_v bishop_n nor_o bishop_n to_o be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n or_o minister_n in_o jurisdiction_n order_n dignity_n or_o degree_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o humano_fw-la six_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o 1._o tim._n 3._o and_o titus_n 1._o 6._o etc._n etc._n make_v a_o particular_a enumeration_n and_o recital_n both_o of_o the_o qualification_n and_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n but_o among_o all_o these_o he_o speak_v not_o a_o word_n concern_v the_o power_n of_o act_n of_o ordination_n neither_o do_v he_o make_v it_o a_o part_n of_o a_o bishop_n qualification_n or_o duty_n to_o be_v apt_a and_o able_a discreet_o to_o confer_v order_n as_o he_o do_v particular_o require_v he_o 2._o shall_v be_v apt_a to_o teach_v how_o therefore_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o chief_a property_n or_o principal_a quality_n of_o a_o bishop_n i_o can_v yet_o conjecture_v since_o the_o scripture_n make_v it_o none_o but_o rather_o a_o property_n a_o act_n of_o the_o presbytery_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o acts._n 13._o 3._o 4._o i_o shall_v desire_v bishop_n therefore_o to_o produce_v some_o divine_a charter_n or_o other_o for_o this_o pretend_a monopoli●e_n of_o ordination_n which_o they_o will_v engross_v unto_o themselves_o alone_o perchance_o to_o make_v the_o more_o advantage_n by_o it_o
he_o that_o ordain_v or_o consecrate_v minister_n be_v great_a in_o jurisdiction_n power_n order_n or_o degree_n than_o the_o party_n consecrate_v and_o ordain_v be_v a_o notorious_a dotage_n and_o untruth_n broach_v at_o first_o by_o 760._o epiphanius_n to_o confute_v aërius_n his_o orthodox_n opinion_n of_o the_o parity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n and_o since_o that_o take_v up_o at_o second_o hand_n by_o 2._o bellarmine_n and_o other_o jesuit_n the_o 7._o council_n of_o trent_n since_o bishop_n downham_n with_o other_o patriot_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o prelate_n monarchy_n and_o last_o of_o all_o like_o colewort_n twice_o sod_a usurp_v by_o all_o our_o prelate_n in_o their_o high_a commission_n at_o lambeth_n in_o their_o censure_n of_o doctor_n bastwicke_n who_o lay_v the_o whole_a weight_n and_o burden_n of_o their_o episcopal_a superiority_n and_o precedency_n over_o other_o minister_n upon_o this_o rot_a counterfeit_a pillar_n unable_a any_o way_n to_o support_v it_o as_o these_o ensue_a demonstration_n will_v evidence_n at_o large_a bejond_n all_o contradiction_n for_o first_o of_o all_o we_o know_v 63._o that_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n at_o this_o day_n as_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n yea_o the_o emperor_n heretofore_o do_v elect_v and_o consecrate_v the_o pope_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o great_a in_o order_n dignity_n power_n or_o jurisdiction_n then_o the_o pope_n but_o inferior_a and_o he_o far_o superior_a to_o they_o in_o all_o these_o we_o 63._o read_v that_o metropolitan_n patriarch_n primate_fw-la and_o archbishop_n be_v create_v consecrate_a and_o install_v by_o ordinary_a bishop_n as_o the_o bps._n archbishop_n of_o canterburry_n and_o york_n have_v oftentimes_o be_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n rochester_n winchester_n salisbury_z and_o the_o like_a yet_o be_v they_o not_o great_a in_o dignity_n power_n authority_n place_n or_o order_n than_o they_o but_o subordinate_a and_o subject_a to_o they_o who_o they_o thus_o ordain_v in_o every_o of_o these_o we_o know_v by_o daily_a experience_n that_o one_o bishop_n consecrate_v and_o ordain_v another_o and_o he_o a_o second_o and_o that_o second_o a_o three_o yet_o all_o of_o they_o be_v of_o equal_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n not_o different_a or_o distinct_a in_o order_n or_o degree_n and_o sometime_o the_o last_o of_o the_o three_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o bishopric_n take_v precedency_n of_o the_o rest_n that_o ordain_v he_o as_o the_o 10._o bishop_n of_o london_n durham_n and_o winchester_n do_v here_o with_o we_o and_o other_o bishop_n the_o like_a in_o foreign_a part_n so_o some_o 35._o minister_n join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o ordination_n and_o lay_v of_o hand_n on_o other_o yet_o one_o of_o they_o be_v not_o superior_a in_o jurisdiction_n order_n or_o degree_n to_o the_o other_o now_o be_v this_o our_o prelate_n object_v paradox_n true_a the_o cardinal_n shall_v be_v great_a in_o order_n power_n and_o degree_n than_o the_o pope_n the_o bishop_n than_o patriarch_n metropolitan_n primate_fw-la and_o archbishop_n one_o bishop_n one_o minister_n then_o another_o yea_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o many_o different_a degree_n among_o bishop_n and_o minister_n as_o there_o be_v successive_a subordinate_a ordination_n which_o be_v both_o false_a and_o absurd_a s._n hierom_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o evagrius_n and_o on_o titus_n 1._o with_o alcuvinus_fw-la de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la officiis_n c._n 37._o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n bishop_n be_v both_o elect_v and_o consecrate_v by_o presbyter_n and_o the_o scripture_n be_v express_v that_o both_o paul_n and_o timothy_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o presbytery_n act_v 13._o 3._o 4._o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o if_o the_o bishop_n reason_n then_o be_v orthodox_n it_o follow_v inevitable_o that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n pres_n byter_n be_v superior_a in_o jurisdiction_n order_n and_o degree_n to_o bishop_n yea_o to_o paul_n and_o timothy_n the_o one_o a_o apostle_n the_o other_o a_o evangelist_n and_o not_o bishop_n lord_n paramount_n over_o they_o as_o they_o now_o pretend_v and_o then_o farewell_n their_o hierarchy_n which_o they_o so_o much_o contend_v for_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o stand_v much_o upon_o this_o argument_n at_o doctor_n bastwicks_n censure_n both_o crown_v our_o sovereign_a lord_n king_n charles_n and_o baptize_v his_o son_n prince_n charles_n will_v he_o therefore_o conclude_v that_o he_o be_v great_a in_o power_n authority_n place_n and_o jurisdiction_n than_o they_o the_o bishop_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n have_v usual_o crown_v and_o baptize_v the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o rheeme_v the_o king_n of_o france_n will_v they_o therefore_o infer_v ergo_fw-la they_o be_v great_a in_o power_n dignity_n and_o authority_n than_o they_o as_o the_o 25._o pope_n argue_v that_o they_o be_v great_a than_o the_o emperor_n because_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v usual_o crown_v the_o emperor_n be_v the_o prince_n elector_n in_o germany_n great_a than_o the_o emperor_n or_o of_o poland_n bohemia_n and_o sweden_n great_a than_o their_o king_n because_o they_o elect_v and_o create_v they_o emperor_n and_o king_n be_v the_o lord_n major_a of_o london_n and_o york_n or_o the_o major_n of_o other_o city_n inferior_a to_o the_o commons_o or_o the_o lord_n chauncellor_n of_o our_o university_n of_o oxford_n and_o cambridge_n less_o honourable_a potent_a and_o inferior_a to_o the_o doctor_n proctor_n and_o master_n of_o art_n or_o the_o head_n or_o master_n of_o the_o colleadge_n and_o hall_n in_o they_o subordinate_a or_o less_o worshipful_a or_o eminent_a than_o the_o fellow_n because_o they_o be_v elect_v constitute_v and_o create_v by_o they_o to_o be_v such_o be_v the_o knight_n citizen_n and_o burgess_n of_o the_o parliament_n not_o so_o good_a as_o those_o freeholder_n citizen_n and_o burgess_n who_o elect_v they_o or_o the_o master_n of_o company_n inferior_a to_o those_o that_o choose_v they_o if_o not_o as_o all_o must_v grant_v how_o be_v this_o maxim_n true_a that_o he_o who_o constitute_v ordain_v or_o consecrate_v another_o be_v great_a than_o the_o party_n constitute_v ordain_v or_o consecrate_v and_o that_o in_o jurisdiction_n place_n order_n and_o degree_n our_o popish_a priest_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o proclaim_v 453_o that_o in_o their_o consecration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o create_v their_o very_a creator_n and_o make_v no_o less_o than_o christ_n himself_o be_v they_o therefore_o great_a and_o high_a in_o order_n and_o degree_n than_o christ_n the_o 21._o great_a and_o only_o high_a priest_n the_o *_o chief_n shepherd_n and_o bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n who_o etc._n vicar_n and_o substitute_n the_o pope_n himself_o do_v but_o claim_n to_o be_v certain_o if_o this_o their_o popish_a proposition_n be_v true_a they_o must_v needs_o be_v one_o order_n and_o degree_n high_a in_o point_n of_o priesthood_n than_o christ_n himself_o who_o must_v then_o lose_v his_o title_n of_o high_a priest_n and_o chief_a shepherd_n because_o every_o masse-preist_n will_v be_v paramount_n he_o in_o that_o he_o not_o only_o consecrate_v but_o create_v he_o too_o we_o read_v in_o r●mano_n scripture_n that_o king_n priest_n and_o prophet_n be_v usual_o anoint_v and_o consecrate_v to_o be_v such_o with_o oil_n be_v therefore_o the_o oil_n that_o consecrate_v they_o great_a or_o better_a than_o they_o be_v the_o font_n and_o water_n better_a than_o the_o child_n 16._o baptize_v in_o or_o with_o they_o the_o diadem_n better_a than_o king_n because_o they_o crown_v they_o or_o the_o very_a hand_n of_o bishop_n and_o minister_n worthy_a than_o minister_n ordain_v by_o they_o if_o not_o then_o be_v not_o bishop_n great_a than_o the_o minister_n which_o they_o ordain_v or_o consecrate_v since_o both_o be_v but_o instrument_n servant_n not_o prime_a original_a agent_n lord_n or_o supreme_a absolute_a actor_n in_o these_o several_a consecration_n and_o action_n if_o we_o cast_v our_o eye_n either_o upon_o nature_n or_o policy_n we_o find_v this_o proposition_n of_o our_o prelate_n a_o mere_a falsehood_n in_o nature_n we_o ●ee_o that_o a_o man_n beget_v a_o man_n a_o horse_n a_o horse_n a_o ass_n a_o ass_n a_o dog_n a_o dog_n etc._n etc._n equal_a one_o to_o the_o other_o in_o nature_n quality_n species_n and_o degree_n the_o son_n be_v as_o much_o a_o man_n as_o the_o father_n the_o colt_n as_o much_o a_o horse_n as_o the_o steed_n that_o beget_v he_o in_o civil_a or_o politic_a constitution_n we_o see_v the_o like_a in_o our_o university_n doctor_n and_o professor_n of_o divinity_n physic_n law_n music_n create_v other_o doctor_n of_o the_o same_o profession_n equal_a to_o themselves_o and_o as_o much_o doctor_n in_o these_o art_n as_o they_o one_o doctor_n in_o each_o of_o these_o be_v as_o much_o and_o no_o more_o a_o doctor_n than_o another_o save_v only_o in_o point_n of_o time_n or_o antiquity_n
have_v be_v insert_v p._n 123._o l._n 27._o after_o mistake_v not_o i_o shall_v close_v up_o this_o concern_v the_o power_n and_o right_n of_o ordination_n with_o these_o ensue_a authority_n and_o memorable_a example_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1389._o the_o lollard_n wiclifs-disciple_n as_o 374._o walsingham_n record_v win_v very_o many_o to_o their_o sect_n grow_v so_o audacious_a that_o their_o presbyter_n like_o bishop_n create_v and_o ordain_v new_a presbyter_n affirm_v that_o every_o priest_n have_v receive_v as_o much_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v and_o to_o minister_v other_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n as_o the_o pope_n himself_o give_v or_o can_v give_v this_o power_n of_o ordination_n they_o exercise_v in_o the_o diocese_n of_o salisbury_n and_o those_o who_o be_v ordain_v by_o they_o think_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v lawful_a to_o they_o presume_v to_o celebrate_v mass_n and_o fear_v not_o to_o handle_v divine_a thing_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n this_o wickedness_n write_v he_o be_v discover_v by_o a_o certain_a man_n ordain_v a_o minister_n by_o they_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o salisbury_n at_o his_o manor_n of_o sun_v by_o which_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o lollard_n and_o wiclenist_n the_o prctestants_n of_o that_o age_n believe_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v as_o much_o to_o presbyter_n by_o god_n law_n as_o to_o bishop_n that_o one_o of_o they_o might_n as_o well_o as_o lawful_o ordain_v minister_n as_o the_o other_o and_o 1889._o that_o as_o they_o may_v lawful_o preach_v the_o gospel_n without_o the_o bishop_n licence_n first_o prescribe_v by_o the_o forge_a statute_n of_o 2._o h_o 5._o c._n 15._o make_v only_o by_o the_o bishop_n without_o the_o commons_o consent_n to_o suppress_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o likewise_o ordain_v minister_n without_o it_o and_o that_o minister_n ordain_v only_o by_o presbyter_n without_o a_o bishop_n privity_n or_o assistance_n be_v lawful_a minister_n and_o may_v lawful_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n discharge_v all_o ministerial_a office_n this_o be_v not_o only_o their_o receive_a doctrine_n but_o their_o practice_n too_o i_o find_v moreover_o that_o b_o janruay_v 20._o 1542._o nicholas_n amsdorffius_fw-la a_o noble_a and_o learned_a unmarried_a man_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o newbury_n by_o martin_n luther_n doctor_n nicholas_n medler_n pastor_n of_o newbury_n george_n spalatine_n of_o aldenburge_n and_o wolffgaugus_n steinius_n of_o lucopeira_n join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o ordination_n lu●her_o afterward_o public_o 456._o maintain_v to_o be_v lawful_a in_o a_o print_a treatise_n loe_o here_o we_o have_v presbyter_n not_o only_o ordain_v a_o presbyter_n but_o a_o bishop_n if_o therefore_o the_o prelate_n paradox_n be_v true_a that_o he_o that_o ordayens_n be_v great_a in_o jursdiction_n and_o degree_n than_o he_o that_o be_v ordain_v it_o will_v hence_o inevitable_o follow_v that_o these_o presbyter_n and_o those_o who_o ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n be_v great_a in_o jurisdiction_n degree_n and_o order_n then_o bishop_n and_o then_o farewell_n their_o pretend_a hierarchy_n 434._o anno_fw-la dom._n 1537._o christian_n the_o 3_o king_n of_o denmark_n remove_v and_o suppress_v by_o a_o public_a edict_n all_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o their_o intolerable_a treason_n and_o rebellion_n abolish_n their_o lordly_a bishopric_n as_o contrary_a to_o our_o saviour_n institution_n the_o mean_n that_o make_v they_o idle_a proud_a ambitious_a unpreach_a prelate_n and_o seditious_a treacherous_a rebel_n to_o their_o prince_n and_o instead_o of_o the_o 7._o bishop_n of_o denmark_n he_o institute_v 7._o superintendent_o to_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n give_v order_n to_o other_o and_o execute_v all_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n which_o 7._o superintendent_o august_n 26._o 1537._o receive_v their_o ordination_n from_o john_n bugenbagius_n a_o protestant_a minister_n in_o the_o cathedral_n of_o hafnia_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o king_n and_o senate_n of_o denmark_n loe_o here_o all_o bishop_n cashier_v as_o false_a rebellious_a ttaytor_n to_o their_o sovereign_n as_o they_o have_v bishop_n ever_o be_v in_o all_o state_n and_o age_n there_o have_v be_v more_o notorious_a traitor_n rebel_n and_o conspirator_n of_o bishop_n then_o of_o all_o other_o rank_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n as_o i_o be_o able_a to_o make_v good_a as_o contrary_a to_o divine_a institution_n and_o so_o not_o jure_v divins_n as_o they_o now_o boast_v and_o superintendent_o ordain_v by_o a_o mere_a presbyter_n in_o their_o steed_n to_o confer_v order_n unto_o other_o in_o all_o the_o danish_a church_n in_o 17._o the_o begin_n of_o reformation_n in_o germany_n and_o other_o place_n luther_n and_o other_o minister_n usual_o ordain_v deacon_n and_o minister_n and_o set_v out_o book_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o ordination_n without_o any_o bishop_n assistance_n which_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n have_v ever_o since_o be_v practise_v by_o minister_n in_o all_o reform_a church_n which_o have_v abandon_v bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v and_o make_v themselves_o as_o contrary_a to_o god_n word_n patrick_n adamson_n archbishop_n of_o saint_n andrew_n in_o scotland_n in_o 55._o his_o recantation_n public_o make_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o fife_n april_n 8._o 1591._o confess_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n omni_fw-la authoritate_fw-la verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la destituitur_fw-la et_fw-la solopolitico_fw-la hominum_fw-la commento_fw-la fundatur_fw-la be_v destitute_a of_o all_o authority_n from_o god_n word_n and_o only_o found_v in_o the_o politic_a figment_n of_o man_n out_o of_o which_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o antichrist_n have_v spring_v and_o that_o it_o be_v worthy_o to_o be_v condemn_v because_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o presbytery_n penes_fw-la quem_fw-la est_fw-la jurisdictio_fw-la et_fw-la inspectio_fw-la tum_fw-la in_o visitationibus_fw-la tum_fw-la in_o ordinationibus_fw-la which_o have_v the_o jurisdiction_n and_o inspection_n both_o in_o visitation_n and_o in_o ordination_n will_v perform_v all_o these_o thing_n with_o great_a authority_n piety_n and_o zeal_n than_o any_o bishop_n whatsoever_o whosecare_n be_v for_o the_o most_o partintent_a not_o upon_o god_n or_o his_o function_n but_o the_o world_n which_o he_o especial_o serve_v a_o fatal_a blow_n to_o our_o prelate_n hierarchy_n for_o if_o lord_n bishop_n be_v not_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la and_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v not_o to_o they_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o they_o be_v lord_n bishop_n neither_o can_v do_v or_o ought_v they_o to_o confer_v order_n as_o they_o be_v bishop_n but_o only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n and_o if_o so_o as_o be_v most_o certain_a then_o this_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v not_o at_o all_o to_o bishop_n as_o they_o be_v bishop_n but_o only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n and_o every_o minister_n as_o he_o be_v a_o minister_n have_v as_o much_o divine_a right_n and_o authority_n to_o give_v order_n as_o any_o bishop_n whatsoever_o the_o true_a reason_n why_o ancient_o among_o the_o papist_n as_o rubrica_fw-la durandus_fw-la confess_v &_o now_o too_o as_o the_o rhemists_n witness_n and_o 35._o even_o in_o our_o own_o english_a church_n among_o we_o at_o this_o day_n minister_n ought_v to_o join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n neither_o can_v our_o bishop_n ordain_v any_o one_o a_o minister_n unless_o three_o or_o four_o minister_n at_o least_o join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o ordination_n and_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n this_o be_v a_o apparent_a truth_n i_o shall_v hence_o from_o the_o bishop_n own_o principle_n prove_v presbyter_n superior_a and_o great_a than_o bishop_n in_o jurisdiction_n dignity_n and_o degree_n those_o say_v they_o to_o who_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v by_o divine_a right_n be_v great_a in_o jurisdiction_n dignity_n and_o degree_n than_o those_o who_o have_v not_o this_o power_n and_o the_o ordayner_n be_v high_a superior_a in_o all_o these_o than_o the_o ordain_v but_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v jure_fw-la divine_a only_o to_o presbyter_n as_o presbyter_n not_o to_o lord_n bishop_n and_o to_z lord_n bishop_n themselves_o not_o as_o bishop_n but_o presbyter_n and_o bishop_n when_o they_o ordain_v in_o a_o lawful_a manner_n do_v it_o only_o as_o presbyter_n not_o as_o bishop_n therefore_o presbyter_n be_v superior_a to_o bishop_n in_o jurisdiction_n order_n and_o degree_n and_o bishop_n themselves_o far_o great_a in_o all_o these_o as_o they_o be_v presbyter_n a_o office_n of_o divine_a invention_n then_o as_o they_o be_v lordly_a prelate_n or_o diocesan_n bishop_n a_o mere_a humane_a institution_n thus_o be_v our_o great_a lord_n bishop_n who_o sabath_n vaunt_v of_o the_o weakness_n of_o puritan_n principle_n whereas_o their_o episcopal_a be_v far_o more_o feeble_a and_o absurd_a wound_v to_o death_n with_o their_o own_o
not_o his_o second_o the_o postscript_n therefore_o of_o his_o second_o epistle_n be_v no_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n when_o the_o first_o epistle_n be_v write_v for_o why_o then_o shall_v not_o the_o postscript_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n style_v he_o a_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o the_o second_o yea_o rather_o than_o the_o second_o since_o the_o first_o have_v much_o matter_n in_o it_o both_o concern_v the_o office_n and_o quality_n of_o a_o bishop_n the_o second_o very_o little_a or_o nothing_o save_v only_o of_o 2._o diligent_a and_o constant_a preach_v in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n which_o belong_v indifferent_o to_o all_o bishop_n and_o minister_n and_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o bishop_n in_o these_o day_n that_o it_o be_v hardly_o common_a to_o or_o with_o any_o of_o they_o rare_a to_o most_o of_o they_o and_o altogether_o improper_a to_o some_o of_o they_o who_o plough_n like_o the_o dunstical_a bishop_n of_o dunkleden_n think_v it_o no_o part_n of_o their_o episcopal_a office_n and_o that_o they_o be_v never_o so_o much_o as_o ordain_v to_o preach_v but_o rather_o to_o sit_v mute_a and_o domineer_v like_o lord_n and_o that_o preach_v belong_v only_o to_o curate_n and_o inferior_a minister_n not_o to_o lordly_a prelate_n who_o seldom_o climb_v now_o into_o a_o pulpit_n above_o once_o a_o year_n whereas_o chrysostome_n augustine_n ambrose_n cyrill_n hooper_n and_o other_o bishop_n ancient_o preach_v once_o at_o least_o every_o day_n obj._n 2._o the_o second_o allegation_n be_v this_o that_o paul_n describe_v to_o episile_a timothy_n the_o office_n quality_n carriage_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n instruct_v he_o how_o to_o demean_v himself_o in_o that_o office_n 1._o tim._n 3_o 4._o and_o 5._o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n answ_n 1._o to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o paul_n by_o a_o bishop_n in_o this_o epistle_n mean_v no_o diocaesan_n bishop_n in_o dignity_n and_o degree_n above_o a_o preshyter_n but_o only_o such_o a_o bishop_n as_o be_v equal_a the_o same_o and_o no_o way_n different_a from_o a_o elder_a as_o all_o the_o preface_n father_n and_o most_o modern_a expositor_n on_o this_o and_o other_o text_n accord_v such_o a_o bishop_n i_o acknowledge_v timothy_n to_o be_v and_o so_o this_o instruction_n to_o he_o imply_v but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o diocaesan_n bishop_n superior_a in_o dignity_n to_o a_o presbyter_n this_o text_n and_o argument_n can_v evince_v second_o admit_v it_o mean_v of_o a_o diocaesan_n bishop_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o thence_o that_o timothy_n be_v such_o a_o one_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v rather_o to_o instruct_v other_o than_o timothy_n who_o be_v so_o well_o tutor_v before_o both_o by_o his_o grand_a mother_n lois_fw-fr and_o paul_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 12._o 20._o c._n 4._o 6._o 14._o 16._o 2._o tim._n 1._o 5._o 6._o 13._o 14._o c._n 2._o 2._o c._n 3._o 10._o 14._o 15._o rather_o for_o a_o pattern_n of_o the_o qualification_n and_o duty_n of_o minister_n to_o direct_v the_o church_n in_o all_o future_a age_n then_o to_o inform_v timothy_n at_o that_o time_n whence_o in_o both_o these_o epistle_n there_o be_v some_o prediction_n of_o the_o apostasy_n and_o degeneracy_n of_o the_o last_o time_n more_o necessary_a for_o 1._o other_o then_o timothy_n to_o know_v 1._o tim._n 5._o 24._o 25._o c._n 6._o 15._o c._n 4._o 1._o to_o 7._o 2._o tim._n 3._o 1._o to_o 10._o three_o there_o be_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n instruction_n give_v concern_v deacon_n widow_n and_o other_o yet_o timothy_n be_v neither_o deacon_n nor_o widow_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o for_o timothy_n also_o to_o know_v as_o he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n a_o fellow-helper_n and_o assistant_n of_o paul_n in_o his_o ministerial_a and_o apostolical_a function_n and_o as_o his_o delegate_v to_o order_v and_o regulate_v the_o church_n according_o argue_v he_o to_o be_v no_o more_o a_o bishop_n as_o be_v surmise_v then_o that_o every_o minister_n and_o christian_n for_o 21._o who_o instruction_n and_o direction_n this_o epistle_n be_v write_v as_o well_o as_o for_o timothy_n be_v bishop_n or_o then_o any_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n instruction_n to_o their_o archdeacon_n vicar_n general_n chaunceller_n or_o official_o for_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n or_o visitation_n argue_v they_o to_o be_v archbishop_n or_o bishop_n four_o we_o read_v of_o divers_a book_n concern_v the_o office_n and_o regiment_n of_o king_n of_o magistrate_n and_o captain_n dedicate_v to_o young_a prince_n and_o other_o who_o be_v neither_o king_n magistrate_n nor_o captain_n of_o diverse_a tractate_v concern_v bishop_n inscribe_v to_o such_o who_o be_v no_o bishop_n yet_o the_o dedicate_a of_o such_o treatise_n to_o they_o do_v neither_o constitute_v or_o necessary_o imply_v they_o to_o be_v king_n magistrate_n captain_n bishop_n why_o then_o shall_v this_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n wherein_o be_v some_o thing_n concern_v the_o office_n quality_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n prove_v he_o convince_o to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o obj._n 3_o the_o three_o evidence_n to_o prove_v timothy_n a_o bishop_n be_v take_v from_o the_o 1._o tim._n 5._o 22._o where_o he_o be_v enjoin_v to_o lay_v hand_n sudden_o on_o no_o man_n that_o be_v to_o ordain_v no_o man_n sudden_o a_o minister_n therefore_o certain_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n because_o none_o but_o bishop_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v minister_n answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n have_v divers_a signification_n in_o scripture_n sometime_o it_o be_v take_v for_o a_o apprehension_n of_o another_o as_o a_o mal_fw-fr factor_n to_o punish_v or_o bring_v he_o to_o judgement_n for_o his_o offence_n exod._n 24._o 11._o esther_n 8._o 7._o gen._n 37._o 22._o exod._n 6._o 13._o nehem._n 13._o 1._o luke_n 21._o 22._o in_o which_o sense_n it_o may_v be_v well_o take_v here_o as_o the_o proceed_n verse_n evidence_n sometime_o it_o be_v use_v for_o reconciliation_n of_o person_n at_o variance_n job._n 9_o 33._o sometime_o for_o benediction_n or_o blessing_n of_o another_o matth._n 9_o 15._o sometime_o for_o cure_v and_o heal_v mark_n 5._o 23._o math._n 19_o 18._o mark_n 6._o 5._o luke_n 4._o 40._o sometime_o for_o confirmation_n as_o many_o affirm_v act_n 8._o 17._o 18._o 19_o sometime_o for_o ordination_n as_o acts._n 6_o 6_o cap._n 8_o 17._o 11._o cap._n 13._o 3._o 1._o timoth._n 4._o 14._o 2._o timoth._n 1._o 6._o acts._n 19_o 6._o in_o which_o of_o these_o sense_n it_o be_v here_o mean_v be_v 22._o not_o certain_o resolve_v and_o so_o no_o inference_n can_v be_v infallible_o raise_v thence_o second_o admit_v it_o be_v mean_v of_o ordination_n as_o most_o conceive_v it_o yet_o that_o prove_v not_o timothy_n to_o be_v a_o bishop_n since_o not_o only_a apostle_n evangelist_n and_o the_o apostle_n fellow-helper_n have_v power_n of_o ordination_n as_o they_o be_v such_o act._n 1_o 22_o 25_o 26._o c._n 6_o 6_o c._n 8_o 17_o 18_o c._n 13_o 1_o 2_o 3._o c._n 14_o 23_o c._n 19_o 6._o tit._n 1_o 5._o 2_o tim._n 1._o 6._o but_o even_a presbyter_n themselves_o acts._n 9_o 17._o c._n 13_o 1_o 2_o 3._o c._n 14_o 23_o 1._o tim._n 4_o 14._o and_o timothy_n may_v exercise_v this_o power_n in_o all_o or_o either_o of_o these_o respect_n not_o as_o a_o bishop_n which_o for_o aught_o appear_v he_o never_o be_v neither_o read_v we_o in_o scripture_n that_o ordination_n belong_v of_o right_a to_o bishop_n as_o bishop_n muchlesse_a that_o it_o be_v appropriate_v unto_o they_o obj._n 4._o the_o four_o objection_n to_o prove_v timothy_n a_o bishop_n be_v this_o that_o he_o be_v command_v to_o rebuke_v such_o as_o sin_v open_o before_o all_o man_n that_o other_o may_v fear_v 1_o tim._n 5_o 20._o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v that_o the_o argument_n be_v a_o inconsequent_a first_o because_o he_o may_v do_v this_o as_o a_o evangelist_n or_o as_o paul_n associate_n or_o substitute_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o apostolical_a authority_n not_o of_o his_o own_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n as_o bishop_n official_o chauncellor_n and_o vicar_n general_n rebuke_n correct_v and_o visit_v other_o not_o in_o their_o own_o name_n or_o by_o their_o own_o authority_n but_o their_o lord_n second_o he_o may_v do_v this_o as_o a_o minister_n every_o minister_n have_v power_n sufficient_a in_o the_o public_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n open_o to_o rebuke_v all_o sin_n and_o sinner_n isaiah_n 5_o 8._o 1_o 2._o tim._n 4_o 2_o 3._o tit._n 1_o 13_o c._n 2_o 15._o mark_n 6_o 18_o 19_o 20._o 2_o sam._n 12_o 7._o three_o he_o may_v do_v this_o as_o a_o private_a christian_a every_o christian_a be_v enjoin_v in_o any_o case_n to_o rebuke_v his_o neighbour_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v
be_v present_a shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o his_o head_n by_o the_o bishop_n hand_n this_o canon_n be_v incorporate_v by_o gratian_n into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o have_v be_v practise_v and_o put_v in_o ure_n in_o all_o age_n since_o till_o now_o the_o very_a gloss_n on_o 23._o gratian_n yea_o and_o 14._o the_o rhemist_n too_o assure_v we_o that_o when_o a_o priest_n be_v ordain_v all_o the_o priest_n stand_v by_o do_v lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o he_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o form_n of_o ordain_v minister_n prescribe_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n or_o counsel_n but_o this_o alone_a which_o all_o church_n have_v observe_v and_o yet_o retain_v since_o therefore_o no_o bishop_n may_v or_o aught_o of_o himself_o alone_o to_o ordain_v minister_n without_o the_o assent_n and_o concurrence_n of_o the_o clergy_n people_n and_o other_o there_o present_a as_o 25._o gratian_n veritatis_fw-la illyricus_n and_o 35._o gersome_a bucerus_n prove_v at_o large_a and_o since_o all_o minister_n present_v ought_v join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o all_o ordination_n of_o minister_n and_o have_v ever_o usual_o do_v it_o in_o all_o age_n and_o church_n how_o this_o prerogative_n of_o ordination_n shall_v be_v peculiar_a to_o bishop_n who_o may_v not_o do_v it_o without_o minister_n concurrrence_n no_o more_o than_o minister_n without_o they_o i_o can_v yet_o conjecture_v true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o 296._o council_n of_o ancyra_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 308._o can._n 3._o ordain_v that_o choral_a bishop_n shall_v not_o ordain_v presbyter_n or_o deacon_n nor_o yet_o presbyter_n of_o the_o city_n in_o another_o parish_n but_o when_o the_o bishop_n shall_v permit_v they_o by_o his_o letter_n and_o the_o 404_o council_n of_o antioch_n under_o pope_n julius_n canon_n 10._o decree_n that_o choral_a bishop_n shall_v not_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n without_o the_o bishop_n privity_n from_o whence_o i_o observe_v first_o that_o before_o these_o counsel_n restrain_v the_o power_n of_o choral_a bishop_n and_o presbyter_n that_o they_o do_v and_o may_v lawful_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n without_o the_o bishop_n privity_n or_o assent_n second_o that_o by_o his_o assent_n and_o licence_n both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o without_o the_o bishop_n presence_n may_v lawful_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n these_o counsel_n therefore_o plain_o resolve_v that_o there_o be_v a_o inhaerent_a right_n and_o power_n of_o ordination_n in_o presbyter_n and_o choral_a bishop_n as_o they_o be_v minister_n and_o that_o with_o the_o bishop_n consent_n and_o license_v they_o may_v lawful_o execute_v it_o and_o confer_v order_n therefore_o the_o right_n and_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v not_o invest_v only_o in_o bishop_n as_o they_o be_v bishop_n for_o than_o none_o else_o can_v ordain_v but_o they_o alone_o the_o forge_a constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n father_v on_o pope_n 20._o clement_n prescribe_v that_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n may_v not_o ordain_v other_o priest_n and_o deacon_n but_o bishop_n only_o and_o the_o 800._o council_n of_o hispalis_n or_o spa_n about_o the_o year_n 6_o 7._o canon_n 5._o 7._o out_o of_o pope_n leo_n epist._n 86._o decree_n that_o presbyter_n and_o choral_a bishop_n which_o be_v all_o one_o shall_v not_o presume_v to_o ordain_v preiste_n or_o deacon_n or_o to_o consecrate_v altar_n or_o church_n for_o in_o holy_a writ_n by_o god_n command_n 40._o moses_n only_o erect_v the_o altar_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o only_o anoint_v it_o because_o he_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v write_v 98._o moses_n and_o aaron_n among_o his_o priest_n therefore_o that_o which_o be_v command_v only_o to_o the_o chief_a priest_n to_o do_v of_o who_o moses_n and_o aaron_n be_v a_o type_n presbyter_n who_o carry_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o son_n of_o aaron_n may_v not_o presume_v to_o enchroach_v upon_o for_o although_o they_o have_v in_o most_o thing_n a_o common_a dispensation_n of_o mystery_n with_o bishop_n yet_o they_o must_v know_v that_o some_o thing_n be_v notwithstanding_o prohibit_v they_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a law_n some_o thing_n by_o new_a ecclesiastical_a rules_n or_o canon_n as_o the_o consecration_n of_o presbyter_n deacon_n and_o virgin_n as_o also_o the_o constitution_n benediction_n or_o unction_n of_o the_o altar_n very_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o consecrate_v church_n or_o altar_n not_o to_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o comforter_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o the_o faithful_a who_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v or_o to_o those_o who_o be_v convert_v from_o heresy_n nor_o to_o make_v chrism_n nor_o to_o sign_n the_o forehead_n of_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v with_o chrism_n 6._o nor_o yet_o public_o to_o reconcile_v any_o penitent_a person_n in_o the_o mass_n nor_o to_o send_v form_v epistle_n to_o any_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v unlawful_a to_o presbyter_n or_o choral_a bishop_n because_o they_o have_v not_o pontificatus_fw-la apicem_fw-la the_o high_a degree_n of_o the_o high_a preist-hood_n which_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v command_v to_o be_v due_a only_o to_o bishop_n that_o by_o this_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o degree_n and_o the_o hight_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n may_v be_v demonstrate_v neither_o shall_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o presbyter_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o baptistery_n before_o the_o bishop_n presence_n not_o to_o baptize_v or_o sign_n a_o infant_n the_o bishop_n be_v present_a nor_o to_o reconcile_v penitent_n without_o the_o bishop_n command_n nor_o to_o consecrate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v present_a nor_o in_o his_o presence_n to_o teach_v or_o bless_v or_o salute_v the_o people_n no_o nor_o yet_o to_o exhort_v they_o all_o which_o thing_n be_v know_v to_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o 86._o see_v apostolic_a these_o two_o last_o authority_n be_v the_o chief_a that_o the_o papist_n jesuit_n and_o our_o prelate_n insist_v on_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n not_o to_o presbyter_n but_o to_o remove_v these_o two_o obstacle_n consider_v first_o that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n in_o either_o of_o these_o two_o constitution_n that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n by_o divine_a right_n and_o institution_n or_o that_o presbyter_n by_o god_n law_n have_v no_o power_n to_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n the_o thing_n only_o in_o question_n second_o that_o the_o council_n express_o resolve_v that_o the_o power_n and_o right_n of_o ordination_n be_v prohibit_v presbyter_n and_o appropriate_v only_o to_o bishop_n not_o by_o any_o law_n of_o god_n or_o ancient_a constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o those_o who_o immediate_o succeed_v they_o but_o only_o by_o some_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n and_o constitution_n then_o new_o make_v and_o by_o the_o authority_n only_o of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n which_o can_v deprive_v minister_n of_o that_o power_n of_o ordination_n which_o the_o scripture_n and_o god_n himself_o have_v give_v they_o three_o that_o before_o these_o late_a canon_n and_o constitution_n presbyter_n may_v lawful_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n four_o that_o the_o chief_a reason_n why_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v take_v from_o minister_n and_o thus_o monopolise_v to_o bishop_n even_o by_o their_o own_o constitution_n wherein_o they_o have_v ever_o favour_v themselves_o be_v only_o to_o advance_v the_o power_n authority_n dignity_n ambition_n and_o pride_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o prelate_n and_o to_o distinguish_v they_o in_o degree_n and_o order_n from_o ordinary_a minister_n which_o of_o right_n be_v and_o otherwise_o will_v be_v their_o equal_n both_o in_o jurisdiction_n power_n and_o degree_n five_o that_o they_o bring_v not_o one_o syllable_n out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n not_o to_o minister_n which_o they_o will_v have_v certain_o do_v have_v there_o be_v any_o text_n to_o warrant_v it_o but_o that_o all_o they_o allege_v be_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o wit_n that_o moses_n only_o consecrate_v the_o tabernacle_n and_o the_o altar_n ergo_fw-la none_o but_o bishop_n must_v consecrate_v minister_n altar_n church_n a_o learned_a argument_n ergo_fw-la none_o but_o king_n and_o temporal_a magistrate_n no_o not_o bishop_n themselves_o may_v do_v it_o have_v be_v a_o better_a consequent_a for_o moses_n be_v no_o priest_n muchlesse_a a_o bishop_n the_o high_a priest_n which_o be_v 11._o aaron_n office_n not_o he_o there_o be_v but_o 35._o one_o high_a priest_n at_o once_o and_o he_o a_o 23._o type_n of_o our_o high_a priest_n christ_n but_o a_o civil_a magigistrate_n yet_o god_n command_v
it_o 161._o be_v a_o sweet_a and_o pleasant_a gain_n as_o some_o handle_n it_o now_o before_o they_o lie_v any_o further_a title_n thereunto_o even_o as_o they_o be_v diocaesan_n bishop_n seaventh_o i_o must_v inform_v our_o bishop_n for_o their_o learning_n that_o an._n 31._o h._n 8._o in_o the_o patent_n roll_v part_n 4._o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o grant_v a_o patent_n to_o all_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o england_n to_o endble_v they_o to_o consecrate_v church_n chapple_v and_o churchyard_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o special_a patent_n and_o commission_n under_o his_o great_a seal_n first_o obtain_v without_o which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v it_o and_o that_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o king_n edward_n the_o 6._o time_n have_v special_a clause_n in_o their_o letter_n patent_n authorise_v they_o to_o ordain_v and_o constitute_v minister_n and_o deacon_n as_o bishop_n ponet_n bishop_n scorye_n bishop_n coverdales_n patent_n 5._o edw._n 6._o pars_fw-la 1._o &_o 2._o with_o other_o in_o his_o reign_n testify_v at_o large_a neither_o do_v or_o can_v our_o archbishop_n or_o bp_n at_o this_o day_n consecrate_v any_o bishop_n or_o archbishop_n unless_o they_o have_v the_o king_n own_o 574._o letter_n patent_n authorise_v and_o command_v they_o to_o do_v it_o as_o the_o patent_n direct_v to_o they_o uponevery_a bishop_n consecration_n and_o experience_n witness_v it_o seem_v therefore_o that_o their_o power_n to_o consecrate_v church_n chapple_v churchyard_n minister_n and_o bishop_n belong_v not_o to_o they_o as_o they_o be_v bishop_n and_o that_o it_o be_v mere_o humane_a not_o divine_a since_o they_o claim_v and_o execute_v it_o only_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o king_n letter_n patent_n therefore_o it_o can_v advance_v they_o above_o pres_n byter_n by_o any_o divine_a right_n eight_o all_o accord_n that_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n when_o or_o where_o bishop_n be_v want_v or_o when_o there_o be_v none_o but_o simontacall_a or_o heretical_a bishop_n who_o refuse_v to_o ordain_v such_o as_o be_v orthodox_n or_o will_v not_o subscribe_v to_o their_o heresy_n there_o presbyter_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n may_v lawful_o confer_v order_n confirm_v and_o do_v other_o act_n which_o bishop_n usual_o engross_v to_o themselves_o so_o ambrose_n augustine_n richardus_fw-la armachanus_fw-la wicliffe_n thomas_n waldensis_n feild_n ames_n with_o other_o in_o their_o forequoted_a place_n and_o general_o all_o divine_n resolve_v without_o dispute_n yea_o that_o learned_a morney_n lord_n of_o plessis_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la c._n 11._o 2._o amesius_n with_o sundry_a other_o affirm_v that_o the_o people_n alone_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n where_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n nor_o minister_n may_v lawful_o elect_v and_o ordain_v minister_n as_o well_o as_o baptise_v and_o preach_v both_o which_o mulier_fw-la papist_n and_o 1796._o protestant_n affirm_v that_o layman_n may_v lawful_o do_v in_o case_n of_o necessity_n the_o right_a of_o ordination_n and_o election_n of_o minister_n be_v original_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o people_n ministerial_o only_a in_o bishop_n and_o minister_n as_o servant_n to_o the_o congregation_n and_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n no_o essential_a but_o a_o ceremonial_a part_n of_o ordination_n which_o may_v be_v sufficient_o make_v without_o it_o as_o angelus_n de_fw-fr clavasio_n peter_n martyr_n and_o other_o both_o papist_n and_o protestant_n affirm_v but_o when_o paul_n leave_v titus_n in_o crete_n 5._o to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v and_o to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n there_o where_o present_v no_o other_o bishop_n or_o elder_n to_o ordain_v minister_n as_o be_v likely_a but_o titus_n only_o for_o we_o read_v of_o none_o else_o but_o titus_n then_o in_o cree●e_n which_o be_v then_o but_o new_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n and_o he_o be_v enjoin_v to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n which_o prove_v there_o be_v none_o there_o before_o for_o what_o need_n then_o of_o any_o yea_o of_o many_o other_o to_o be_v new_o ordain_v and_o that_o in_o every_o city_n titus_n his_o example_n of_o ordination_n therefore_o in_o this_o exigent_n and_o necessity_n in_o a_o church_n then_o new_o plant_v be_v no_o argument_n to_o prove_v he_o a_o diocaesan_n bishop_n since_o other_o ordinary_a minister_n may_v ordain_v in_o such_o a_o case_n as_o all_o acknowledge_v yea_o and_o the_o people_n too_o without_o either_o minister_n or_o bishop_n to_o assist_v they_o nine_o i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o titus_n do_v not_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n by_o virtue_n of_o any_o episcopal_a inherent_a jurisdiction_n of_o his_o own_o but_o as_o paul_n substitute_n who_o appoint_v he_o to_o do_v it_o and_o prescribe_v he_o what_o manner_n of_o person_n he_o shall_v ordain_v tit._n 1._o 5._o 6._o 7._o 8._o 9_o this_o therefore_o can_v prove_v titus_n to_o be_v a_o bishop_n or_o that_o the_o sole_a right_n of_o ordination_n be_v appropriate_v unto_o bishop_n as_o bishop_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_n last_o admit_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v pres_n byter_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la yet_o be_v no_o good_a consequent_a ergo_fw-la they_o be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n in_o order_n and_o degree_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la since_o the_o confer_v of_o order_n a_o forequote_v act_n of_o service_n of_o ministry_n only_o not_o of_o authority_n and_o no_o more_o than_o a_o external_a compliment_n or_o ceremony_n be_v far_o 517._o inferior_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o preach_v baptise_v consecrate_v and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n which_o every_o minister_n may_v do_v as_o well_o as_o a_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v 46._o many_o of_o they_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n of_o prophecy_n of_o heal_v and_o work_v miracle_n which_o some_o bishop_n then_o and_o all_o now_o want_v yet_o these_o extraordinary_a endowment_n make_v they_o not_o superior_a in_o jurisdiction_n order_n or_o degree_n to_o those_o bishop_n who_o then_o want_v those_o gift_n or_o to_o we_o now_o who_o take_v far_o more_o state_n upon_o they_o than_o those_o bishop_n do_v proaemio_fw-la many_o bishop_n there_o be_v and_o have_v be_v that_o can_v not_o at_o least_o will_v not_o preach_v though_o bellarmine_n himself_o yea_o the_o 4._o council_n of_o trent_n and_o 623._o all_o man_n acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o most_o honourable_a part_n of_o their_o episcopal_a function_n as_o make_v they_o christ_n ambassador_n be_v they_o then_o inferior_a in_o order_n dignity_n power_n and_o degree_n to_o bishop_n yea_o to_o minister_n vicar_n and_o poor_a curate_n who_o be_v both_o able_a and_o willing_a to_o preach_v that_o which_o make_v any_o man_n superior_a in_o order_n jurisdiction_n or_o dignity_n to_o his_o equal_a must_v be_v a_o authority_n superior_a to_o that_o which_o his_o equal_a have_v not_o the_o accession_n of_o any_o inferior_a dignity_n or_o power_n the_o make_n of_o a_o earl_n a_o knight_n or_o country-iustice_n add_v nothing_o to_o his_o former_a honour_n in_o point_n of_o superiority_n or_o precedency_n if_o a_o bishop_n be_v present_v to_o a_o ordinary_a benefice_n prebendary_a or_o deanery_n as_o 630._o some_o be_v and_o have_v be_v by_o way_n of_o commendam_fw-la it_o accumulate_v nought_o to_o his_o episcopal_a authority_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n preach_v and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n which_o every_o enjoy_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o absolute_o as_o any_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n can_v no_o way_n advance_v bishop_n in_o jurisdiction_n or_o degree_n above_o pres_n byter_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n no_o more_o than_o the_o bishop_n of_o durham_n his_o be_v a_o 24._o count_n palatine_n with_o his_o large_a temporal_a jurisdiction_n far_o exceed_v that_o of_o all_o our_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n advaunce_v he_o in_o order_n or_o degree_n above_o they_o all_o so_o that_o this_o grand_a objection_n to_o prove_v titus_n a_o bishop_n yea_o a_o bishop_n superior_a in_o jurisdiction_n order_n and_o degree_n to_o minister_n be_v both_o false_a and_o idle_a obj._n 4._o if_o any_o object_n that_o it_o be_v a_o receive_a maxim_n in_o the_o school_n 2._o that_o he_o which_o ordain_v be_v great_a than_o he_o who_o be_v ordain_v and_o that_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o lesser_a be_v bless_v of_o the_o great_a therefore_o titus_n and_o so_o likewise_o bishop_n who_o ordain_v minister_n in_o point_n of_o jurisdiction_n order_n dignity_n and_o degree_n answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o objection_n take_v that_o for_o grant_v which_o i_o former_o refute_v and_o evidence_v to_o be_v a_o falsehood_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n not_o to_o presbyter_n and_o so_o be_v build_v on_o a_o false_a sandy_a foundation_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o proposition_n
as_o well_o temporal_a and_o civil_a as_o ecclesiastical_a and_o all_o these_o their_o office_n style_v in_o greek_a a_o bishopric_n since_o every_o pastor_n watchman_n presbyter_n minister_n rector_n and_o curate_n who_o take_v care_n of_o watch_v feed_v overlook_v instruct_v or_o keep_v the_o flock_n and_o people_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n be_v even_o in_o the_o scripture_n language_n call_v a_o bishop_n and_o say_v to_o act_v to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n since_o those_o who_o out_o of_o charity_n love_n or_o friendship_n go_v to_o visit_v other_o who_o be_v either_o sick_a poor_a fatherless_a or_o otherwise_o distress_v and_o god_n himself_o when_o he_o come_v to_o punish_v or_o show_v mercy_n unto_o other_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a and_o scripture_n phrase_n say_v to_o visit_v and_o play_v the_o bishop_n as_o appear_z by_o the_o forecited_a scripture_n and_o by_o acts._n 15._o 36._o where_o paul_n say_v to_o barnabas_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o translate_v let_v we_o go_v again_o and_o visit_v our_o brethren_n in_o every_o city_n where_o we_o have_v preach_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o see_v how_o they_o do_v from_o which_o text_n the_o m._n rhemist_n will_v make_v bishop_n ordinary_a visitation_n to_o be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la but_o this_o be_v no_o lordly_a episcopal_a visitation_n such_o as_o our_o bishop_n now_o keep_v for_o we_o read_v of_o no_o visitation_n article_n oath_n fee_n or_o presentmens_n in_o it_o neither_o be_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n bishop_n but_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a visitation_n of_o love_n as_o one_o friend_n visit_v another_o not_o of_o jurisdiction_n as_o the_o last_o word_n and_o see_v how_o they_o do_v together_o with_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n can._n 57_o expound_v it_o and_o verse_n 14._o simon_n have_v declare_v how_o god_n 〈◊〉_d at_o the_o first_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v visit_v the_o gentile_n to_o take_v out_o of_o they_o a_o people_n for_o his_o name_n and_o acts._n 7._o 23._o when_o moses_n be_v full_a 40._o year_n old_a it_o come_v into_o his_o heart_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o visit_v his_o brethren_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o since_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o visit_v oversee_v or_o play_v the_o bishop_n 107._o imply_v no_o lordship_n soveraingty_n dominion_n jurisdiction_n or_o lordly_a episcopal_a authority_n in_o they_o at_o least_o no_o such_o as_o our_o bishop_n now_o claim_v and_o exercise_v but_o rather_o a_o act_n of_o humility_n charity_n service_n and_o inferiority_n to_o the_o person_n visit_v as_o be_v evident_a by_o matthew_n 25._o 3._o 6._o 43._o acts._n 7._o 23._o c._n 15._o 36._o jam._n 1._o 27._o heb._n 2._o 6._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 2._o 3._o 5._o it_o hence_o unanswerable_o follow_v that_o bishop_n episcopal_a lordly_a visitation_n be_v not_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la and_o that_o other_o minister_n be_v as_o much_o visitor_n and_o may_v visit_v as_o well_o as_o they_o that_o every_o presbyter_n minister_n curate_n who_o do_v faithful_o discharge_v his_o duty_n 1465._o be_v as_o much_o as_o true_o as_o proper_o a_o bishop_n both_o in_o the_o scripture_n language_n and_o in_o god_n account_n as_o any_o diocaesan_n bishop_n or_o prelate_n whatsoever_o that_o those_o bishop_n who_o merge_n themselves_o in_o pleasure_n idleness_n or_o secular_a affair_n and_o do_v not_o diligent_o faithful_o entire_o give_v themselves_o to_o preach_v god_n word_n instruct_v and_o teach_v the_o people_n visit_v the_o fatherless_a imprison_v sick_a poor_a widow_n and_o flock_n commit_v to_o they_o which_o few_o of_o our_o prelate_n now_o deign_v to_o do_v be_v 4._o in_o truth_n in_o god_n in_o christ_n account_n and_o in_o the_o scripture_n language_n no_o bishop_n at_o all_o what_o ever_o they_o pretend_v that_o the_o word_n bishop_n be_v 3_o not_o a_o title_n of_o dominion_n soveraingty_n jurisdiction_n glory_n power_n preeminency_n pomp_n state_n authority_n and_o command_v as_o our_o bishop_n who_o now_o presume_v to_o monopolise_v it_o to_o themselves_o alone_o though_o common_a 〈…〉_z god_n be_v word_n and_o ancient_a writer_n to_o every_o minister_n pretend_v but_o of_o humility_n office_n service_n labour_n care_n circumspection_n watchfulness_n meekness_n tenderheartedness_n charity_n familiarity_n and_o brotherly_a kindness_n which_o most_o prelate_n have_v now_o quite_o shake_v off_o the_o father_n still_v therefore_o of_o timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n or_o titus_n bishop_n of_o crete_n or_o bishop_n will_v neither_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v diocaesan_n or_o sole_a bishop_n of_o those_o church_n or_o that_o they_o have_v a_o superiority_n or_o jurisdiction_n as_o they_o be_v bishop_n over_o all_o other_o minister_n or_o presbyter_n in_o those_o church_n or_o that_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la superior_a to_o or_o different_a in_o order_n or_o degree_n from_o presbyter_n who_o have_v the_o selfsame_o commission_n or_o authority_n give_v they_o by_o christ_n as_o they_o and_o so_o have_v equal_a authority_n with_o they_o and_o be_v as_o much_o bishop_n every_o way_n by_o god_n law_n as_o they_o even_o as_o every_o high_a commissioner_n of_o the_o quorum_fw-la be_v as_o much_o a_o high_a commissioner_n as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n or_o york_n and_o have_v as_o much_o authority_n as_o a_o high_a commissioner_n as_o they_o since_o they_o have_v all_o the_o selfsame_o commission_n which_o give_v no_o great_a power_n to_o one_o of_o they_o then_o the_o other_o but_o the_o same_o to_o both_o indeed_o have_v christ_n give_v a_o different_a commission_n to_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o seaventy_n disciple_n or_o to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n then_o to_o other_o elder_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n or_o to_o bishop_n than_o he_o have_v give_v to_o presbyter_n and_o minister_n there_o may_v have_v be_v some_o ground_n to_o have_v prove_v the_o 12._o apostle_n timothy_n tytus_fw-la and_o bishop_n great_a in_o jurisdiction_n power_n authority_n and_o degree_n than_o the_o 70._o disciple_n presbyter_n and_o other_o minister_n by_o divine_a institution_n but_o since_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o 21._o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o 12._o apostle_n and_o 70._o disciple_n what_o ever_o he_o some_o man_n have_v rash_o determine_v to_o the_o contrary_a have_v but_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o commission_n give_v unto_o they_o by_o christ_n that_o timothy_n titus_n archbishop_n bishop_n and_o other_o prelate_n have_v no_o other_o no_o large_a patent_n commission_n or_o authority_n grant_v unto_o they_o by_o christ_n than_o presbyter_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n as_o the_o book_n of_o ordination_n manifest_v where_o the_o same_o word_n be_v use_v the_o same_o commission_n give_v from_o god_n to_o minister_n at_o the_o ordination_n of_o every_o minister_n as_o there_o be_v to_o bishop_n at_o the_o consecration_n of_o any_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n since_o they_o be_v all_o join_v together_o in_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o divine_a charter_n and_o all_o claim_n by_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o grant_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o math._n 28._o 19_o 20._o mark_n 6._o 15_o 16._o john_n 20._o 22._o 23._o acts._n 1._o 8._o c._n 10._o 47._o c._n 20._o 17._o 28._o col._n 4._o 17._o 1._o tim._n 3._o 1._o to_o 7._o c._n 4._o 12._o 13._o c._n 5._o 17._o 18._o 20._o 21._o 22._o c._n 6._o 11._o 12._o 17._o 18._o 19_o 20._o 2._o tim._n 2._o 14._o 15._o 16._o c._n 4._o 1._o to_o 16._o tit._n 1._o 5._o to_o 14._o c._n 2._o 1._o to_o 15._o c._n 3._o 1._o 2._o 8._o 9_o 10._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o 5._o 2._o pet._n 1._o 12._o 13._o 1._o cor._n 1._o 12._o 13._o 17._o c._n 3._o 4._o 5._o to_o 11._o 21._o 22._o c._n 4._o 1._o 6._o 7._o 17._o c._n 9_o 16._o 17._o c._n 13._o 29._o 30._o 31._o 32._o ephes_n 4._o 11._o 12._o with_o other_o scripture_n it_o be_v most_o apparent_a and_o undeniable_a that_o by_o god_n word_n and_o institution_n they_o be_v all_o equal_a both_o in_o point_n of_o office_n power_n jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n not_o one_o of_o they_o great_a high_a or_o superior_a than_o the_o other_o have_v the_o selfsame_o divine_a ordination_n commission_n office_n and_o charge_n final_o hist._n eusebius_n record_v only_o that_o timothy_n be_v report_a to_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o titus_n of_o the_o church_n in_o crete_n so_o that_o all_o the_o father_n authority_n who_o follow_v eusebius_n be_v ground_v only_o upon_o this_o bare_a report_n not_o upon_o any_o certainty_n therefore_o not_o to_o be_v grant_v or_o rely_v on_o the_o rather_o 812._o because_o there_o have_v be_v ancient_o in_o crete_n no_o less_o than_o 4._o archbishop_n and_o 21._o bishop_n suff●●aganes_n now_o it_o be_v very_o improbable_a that_o paul_n will_v
weapon_n and_o all_o their_o domineer_a swell_a authority_n overthrow_v by_o that_o very_a principle_n foundation_n on_o which_o they_o have_v presume_v to_o erect_v it_o the_o ancient_a proverb_n be_v here_o true_o verify_v vis_fw-fr consilij_fw-la expers_fw-la moleruit_fw-la sua_fw-la i_o shall_v close_v up_o this_o with_o the_o word_n of_o acute_a 18._o antonius_n sadeel_n who_o after_o a_o large_a proof_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n to_o be_v both_o one_o and_o the_o same_o by_o divine_a institution_n wind_n up_o all_o in_o this_o manner_n we_o conclude_v therefore_o see_v that_o superior_a episcopal_a dignity_n be_v to_o be_v avowch_v only_o by_o humane_a institution_n tantum_fw-la esse_fw-la humani_fw-la juris_fw-la that_o it_o be_v only_o of_o humane_a right_n on_o the_o contrary_a since_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n bishop_n be_v the_o same_o with_o presbyter_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la potestatem_fw-la ordinandi_fw-la non_fw-la minus_fw-la presbiteris_fw-la quam_fw-la episcopis_fw-la convenire_fw-la that_o by_o god_n law_n and_o divine_a right_n the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v as_o much_o to_o presbyter_n as_o to_o bishop_n page_n 51._o l._n 17._o between_o same_o and_o since_o this_o shall_v have_v be_v inscribe_v so_o english_a alexander_n &_o narcissus_n be_v both_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o same_o time_n paulinus_n and_o miletus_n both_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n together_o theodosius_n and_o agapetus_n be_v both_o bishop_n of_o synada_n at_o the_o 3._o same_o season_n 680._o valerius_n and_o augustine_n be_v both_o joint_a bishop_n of_o hippotogether_o by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n and_o when_o as_o augustine_n be_v loath_a to_o be_v join_v a_o bishop_n with_o valerius_n allege_v it_o to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v two_o bishop_n in_o one_o city_n they_o repyle_v non_fw-la hoc_fw-la esse_fw-la inusitatum_fw-la that_o this_o be_v no_o unusuallth_v confirm_v this_o both_o by_o example_n of_o the_o african_a and_o other_o foreign_a church_n whereupon_o he_o be_v satisfy_v in_o the_o scisamte_fw-fr church_n of_o rome_n we_o know_v there_o have_v be_v sometime_o two_o sometime_o three_o and_o once_o four_o pope_n and_o bishop_n at_o one_o time_n some_o adhere_n to_o the_o one_o some_o to_o the_o other_o but_o all_o of_o they_o confer_v order_n make_v cardinal_n and_o exercise_v papal_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o donatum_fw-la church_n of_o constantinople_n alexandria_n jerusalem_n antioch_n and_o africa_n during_o the_o arrian_n macedonian_a novatian_a heresy_n and_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n there_o be_v successive_o two_o or_o three_o bishop_n together_o in_o they_o and_o other_o city_n the_o one_o orthodox_n the_o other_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a yea_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a canon_n 7._o admit_v the_o novation_n bishop_n which_o conform_a themselves_o to_o the_o church_n and_o renounce_v their_o error_n to_o enjoy_v the_o title_n and_o dignity_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o to_o be_v associate_v with_o the_o orthodox_n bishop_n if_o they_o think_v fit_a and_o 499._o st._n augustine_n will_v have_v the_o donatists_n bishop_n where_o there_o be_v a_o donatist_n bishop_n and_o a_o catholic_a if_o the_o donatist_n return_v unto_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o bishop_n office_n with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n if_o the_o people_n will_v suffer_v it_o poterit_fw-la quip_n unusquisque_fw-la nostrum_fw-la honoris_fw-la sibi_fw-la socio_fw-la copulato_fw-la vicissim_fw-la sedere_fw-la eminentius_fw-la etc._n etc._n utroque_fw-la alterum_fw-la cum_fw-la honore_fw-la mutuo_fw-la praeveniente_fw-la nec_fw-la novum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o he_o there_o define_v therefore_o this_o be_v then_o repute_v no_o novaltie_n platina_n 7._o record_v of_o rhotaris_n king_n of_o the_o lombard_n who_o decline_v to_o the_o arian_n that_o in_o all_o the_o city_n of_o his_o kingdom_n he_o permit_v there_o shall_v be_v two_o bishop_n of_o equal_a power_n the_o one_o a_o catholic_a the_o other_o a_o arian_n and_o that_o he_o place_v two_o such_o bishop_n in_o every_o city_n 53._o danaeus_n prove_v out_o of_o epiphanius_n that_o ancient_o in_o most_o city_n there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o bishop_n nicephorus_n write_v that_o the_o scythian_n near_o ister_n have_v many_o and_o great_a city_n 758._o all_o of_o they_o subject_n to_o one_o bishop_n but_o among_o other_o people_n we_o know_v there_o be_v bishop_n not_o only_o in_o every_o city_n but_o also_o in_o every_o village_n especial_o among_o the_o arabian_n in_o phrygia_n and_o in_o cyprus_n among_o the_o novatian_o and_o montanist_n yea_o no_o long_o since_o then_o the_o 740._o council_n of_o late_a an_o under_o innocent_a the_o 3d._o there_o be_v divers_a bishop_n in_o one_o city_n and_o diocese_n where_o there_o be_v divers_a nation_n of_o divers_a language_n and_o custom_n which_o though_o his_o council_n disallow_v where_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n yet_o it_o approve_v and_o permit_v where_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n nay_o 537._o those_o canon_n constitution_n and_o decretall_n which_o prohibit_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v many_o bishop_n in_o one_o city_n or_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v bishop_n in_o castle_n village_n or_o small_a town_n and_o parish_n lest_o the_o dignity_n of_o bishop_n shall_v become_v common_a and_o contemptible_a manifest_a that_o before_o these_o canon_n and_o constitution_n there_o be_v many_o bishop_n in_o one_o city_n and_o diocese_n and_o a_o bishop_n in_o every_o little_a castle_n town_n and_o country_n village_n and_o to_o come_v near_a home_n the_o statute_n of_o 26._o h._n 8._o c._n 14._o ordain_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v many_o suffragan_a bishop_n exercise_v episcopal_a jurisdiction_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o diocese_n of_o england_n with_o the_o statute_n of_o 31._o h._n 8._o c_o 9_o 33._o h._n 8._o c._n 31._o 34._o h._n 8._o c._n 1._o which_o erect_v divers_a new_a bishopric_n in_o england_n and_o divide_v one_o diocese_n into_o many_o both_o intimate_a and_o prove_v as_o much_o why_o then_o there_o may_v not_o now_o be_v divers_a bishop_n in_o one_o city_n one_o church_n aswell_o as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o form_n age_n or_o as_o well_o as_o there_o be_v now_o divers_a archbishop_n and_o bishop_n in_o one_o kingdom_n divers_a minister_n in_o one_o cathedral_n and_o parish_n church_n i_o can_v yet_o conceive_v unless_o bishop_n will_v now_o make_v themselves_o such_o absolute_a lordly_a monarch_n and_o king_n as_o can_v admit_v of_o any_o 1._o equal_n or_o corrivall_n with_o they_o and_o be_v more_o ambitious_a proud_a vayneglorious_a covetous_a unsociable_a than_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a time_n who_o successor_n they_o pretend_v themselves_o to_o be_v in_o word_n though_o they_o disclay_v i_o they_o utter_o in_o their_o manner_n lordlines_n pomp_n and_o supercilious_a deportment_n which_o they_o will_v not_o lay_v down_o for_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n i_o shall_v conclude_v this_o with_o that_o notable_a speech_n of_o saint_n 783._o augustine_n and_o those_o other_o almost_o 300._o bishop_n who_o be_v content_a to_o lay_v down_o their_o bishoprik_v for_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n et_fw-la non_fw-la perdere_fw-la sed_fw-la deo_fw-la tutius_fw-la comendare_fw-la an_fw-mi vero_fw-la redemptor_n noster_fw-la de_fw-la caelis_fw-la inhumana_fw-la membra_fw-la descendit_fw-la ut_fw-la membra_fw-la eius_fw-la esse●●us_fw-la et_fw-la nos_fw-la ne_fw-la ipsa_fw-la eius_fw-la membra_fw-la crudeli_fw-la divisione_n lanientur_fw-la de_fw-la cathedris_fw-la descendere_fw-la formidamus_fw-la episcopi_fw-la propter_fw-la christianos_n populos_fw-la ordinamur_fw-la quod_fw-la ergo_fw-la christianis_fw-la populis_fw-la ad_fw-la christianam_fw-la pacem_fw-la prodest_fw-la hoc_fw-la de_fw-la nostro_fw-la episcopatu_fw-la faciamus_fw-la quod_fw-la sum_fw-la propter_fw-la te_fw-la sum_fw-la si_fw-la tibi_fw-la prodest_fw-la non_fw-la sum_fw-la si_fw-la tibi_fw-la obest_fw-la si_fw-mi servi_n utiles_fw-la sumus_fw-la cur_n domnini_n aeternis_fw-la lucris_fw-la pro_fw-la nostris_fw-la temporalibus_fw-la sublimitatibus_fw-la invidemus_fw-la episcopalis_fw-la dignitas_fw-la fructuosior_fw-la nobis_fw-la erit_fw-la si_fw-la gregem_fw-la christi_fw-la deposita_fw-la magis_fw-la collegerit_fw-la quam_fw-la retenta_fw-la disperserit_fw-la fratres_n mei_fw-la si_fw-la dominum_fw-la cogitamus_fw-la locus_fw-la ille_fw-la altior_fw-la specula_fw-la vinitoris_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la fastigium_fw-la superbientis_fw-la sicum_n nolo_fw-la retinere_fw-la episcopatum_fw-la meum_fw-la dispergo_fw-la gregem_fw-la christi_fw-la quomodo_fw-la est_fw-la damnum_fw-la gregis_fw-la honour_n pastoris_fw-la nam_fw-la qua_fw-la front_n in_fw-la futuro_fw-la seculo_fw-la promissum_fw-la a_o christo_fw-la sperabimus_fw-la honorem_fw-la si_fw-la christianam_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la seculo_fw-la noster_fw-la honour_n impedit_fw-la unitatem_fw-la to_o which_o i_o shall_v add_v as_o a_o corollary_n a_o like_a speech_n of_o that_o holy_a devout_a man_n s._n bernard_n 330._o
he_o but_o they_o and_o he_o if_o he_o shall_v chance_v to_o challenge_v and_o resume_v they_o as_o his_o own_o may_v not_o henceforth_o own_a or_o claim_v they_o to_o be_v his_o they_o have_v little_a reason_n now_o to_o attempt_v and_o his_o majesty_n far_o less_o to_o suffer_v and_o so_o have_v neither_o god_n nor_o the_o king_n divine_a nor_o human_a right_n to_o support_v they_o they_o must_v as_o the_o proverb_n be_v between_o two_o stool_n the_o arse_n go_v to_o the_o ground_n now_o at_o last_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o usurp_a greatness_n fall_v flat_a upon_o the_o ground_n and_o this_o their_o fall_n q_o prove_v very_o great_a because_o they_o now_o of_o late_a be_v grow_v so_o man_n not_o be_v content_a with_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n but_o they_o must_v be_v also_o king_n temporal_a lord_n and_o chief_a state_n officer_n against_o christ_n express_a command_n and_o god_n own_o law_n to_o sway_v both_o church_n and_o state_n at_o pleasure_n so_o they_o may_v engross_v 17._o into_o their_o sacred_a hand_n the_o sole_a rule_n and_o government_n of_o the_o world_n have_v great_a possession_n and_o be_v great_a lord_n also_o as_o they_o be_v prelate_n and_o yet_o do_v nothing_o therefore_o at_o all_o in_o point_n of_o preach_v fecd_a and_o instruct_v the_o people_n commit_v to_o their_o spiritual_a charge_n but_o only_o play_v the_o part_n of_o a_o bishop_n as_o a_o christmas_n game-player_n do_v of_o a_o king_n and_o as_o a_o poppet_n which_o spring_v up_o and_o down_o and_o cry_v peep_v peep_v and_o go_v his_o way_n as_o 18._o doctor_n barnes_n write_v witty_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o age_n which_o swell_v greatness_n 〈◊〉_d ambition_n of_o they_o as_o it_o will_v make_v their_o downfall_n the_o great_a so_o the_o speedy_a be_v a_o sure_a prognosticke_n of_o their_o approach_a ruin_n as_o the_o greatness_n of_o any_o unnatural_a swell_n in_o the_o body_n be_v of_o its_o present_a ensue_a rupture_n u._fw-mi pride_n ever_o go_v before_o destruction_n and_o a_o lofty_a spirit_n before_o a_o fall_n and_o they_o usual_o dog_v they_o at_o the_o heel_n because_o 5._o god_n himself_o resist_v the_o proud_a but_o then_o most_o of_o all_o when_o they_o be_v at_o the_o high_a according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o psalmist_n 119._o thou_o put_v away_o all_o the_o wicked_a of_o the_o earth_n like_o dross_n which_o assoon_o as_o ever_o it_o have_v get_v up_o to_o the_o top_n of_o the_o pot_n and_o elevate_v itself_o above_o the_o 〈◊〉_d mettle_n be_v then_o scum_v off_o and_o cast_v away_o towards_o which_o their_o desire_a speedy_a downfall_n if_o these_o my_o unworthy_a labour_n shall_v through_o god_n blessing_n on_o and_o thy_o prayer_n for_o they_o contribute_v any_o assistance_n for_o the_o ease_n relief_n or_o comfort_n of_o god_n poor_a people_n time_n who_o be_v every_o where_o most_o wrongful_o without_o yea_o accusation_n against_o all_o law_n and_o reason_n oppress_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o their_o benefice_n freehold_n possession_n imprison_v fine_v excommunicate_v silence_v suspend_v vilify_v crush_v and_o tread_v under_o foot_n by_o their_o intolerable_a tyranny_n might_n and_o unbounded_a extravagant_a power_n i_o shall_v neither_o repent_v i_o of_o the_o pen_n nor_o thou_o thyself_o of_o the_o read_n of_o it_o wherefore_o here_o humble_o prostrate_v it_o to_o thy_o impartial_a censure_n and_o commend_v it_o to_o the_o blessing_n of_o that_o omnipotent_a god_n who_o to_o show_v the_o infinitenes_n of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o power_n do_v oft_o time_n 29._o choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a the_o weak_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v mighty_a and_o base_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n and_o thing_n that_o be_v despise_v yea_o and_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o to_o bring_v to_o nought_o thing_n that_o be_v that_o no_o flesh_n shall_v glory_v in_o his_o presence_n i_o shall_v take_v my_o leave_n of_o thou_o till_o some_o further_a occasion_n farewell_n and_o pray_v for_o i_o to_o the_o right_n reverend_a father_n in_o god_n william_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o richard_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o york_n primate_fw-la and_o metropolitan_n of_o all_o england_n my_o lord_n i_o have_v sundry_a time_n hear_v both_o of_o you_o joint_o and_o several_o protest_v even_o in_o open_a court_n not_o only_o in_o the_o case_n high-commission_n but_o in_o dr._n laytons_n and_o two_o other_o case_n since_o starchamber_n too_o whether_o serious_o or_o vaunt_o only_a let_v the_o event_n determine_v that_o if_o you_o can_v not_o prove_v your_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n and_o function_n which_o you_o now_o claim_v and_o exercise_v over_o other_o minister_n and_o yourselves_o as_o you_o be_v bishop_n to_o be_v superior_a in_o power_n dignity_n and_o degree_n to_o other_o minister_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la a_o doctrine_n which_o 1630._o patrick_n adamson_n archbishop_n of_o s._n andrew_n in_o scotland_n public_o recant_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o fife_n anno_fw-la 1591._o as_o direct_o repugnant_a to_o and_o have_v no_o foundation_n at_o all_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n you_o will_v forthwith_o cast_v away_o your_o rochet_n of_o your_o back_n lay_v down_o your_o bishopricke_n at_o his_o majesty_n foot_n and_o not_o continue_v bishop_n on_o ehower_n long_o what_o your_o lordship_n have_v so_o oft_o aver_v and_o public_o promise_v before_o many_o witness_n i_o hope_v bonâ_fw-la fide_fw-la because_o judicial_o in_o full_a court_n upon_o goodadvise_n not_o rash_o on_o some_o sudden_a fit_a of_o choler_n i_o shall_v make_v bold_a to_o challenge_v you_o to_o make_v good_a without_o more_o delay_n either_o by_o give_v a_o solid_a satisfactory_a speedy_a answer_n to_o this_o short_a treatise_n consist_v only_o of_o 2._o question_n which_o you_o may_v divide_v between_o you_o and_o so_o speedy_o reply_v to_o if_o your_o great_a prelate_n secular_a occasion_n not_o your_o pray_n and_o 3._o frequent_a preach_v which_o be_v only_o true_o epicopall_a though_o you_o deem_v they_o overmeane_n employment_n for_o archbishop_n interrupt_v you_o not_o which_o manifest_v all_o that_o jus_fw-la divinum_fw-la which_o hitherto_o both_o or_o either_o your_o lordship_n have_v pretend_v for_o your_o episcopality_n to_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a absurd_a ridiculous_a faction_n have_v not_o the_o least_o shadow_n of_o scripture_n to_o support_v it_o or_o in_o case_n you_o either_o can_v or_o fail_v to_o give_v such_o a_o answer_n to_o it_o in_o convenient_a time_n by_o pull_v off_o your_o rochet_n and_o resingn_v up_o your_o archbishoprike_n which_o without_o all_o question_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a human_a and_o no_o divine_a institution_n as_o i_o have_v evidence_v into_o his_o majesty_n hand_n cong_n from_o who_o you_o dare_v not_o deny_v you_o only_o and_o whole_o receive_v they_o with_o all_o your_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n thereunto_o annex_v whereby_o you_o difference_n yourselves_o from_o or_o advance_v yourselves_o above_o your_o fellow-minister_n as_o their_o supreme_a lord_n unless_o you_o will_v split_v yourselves_o against_o the_o hard_a rock_n of_o a_o praemunire_n and_o the_o statute_n of_o 26._o h._n 8._o c._n 1._o 31._o h._n 8._o c._n 9_o 10._o 37._o h._n c._n 17._o 1._o ed._n 6._o c._n 2._o 1._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 5._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 8._o eliz._n c._n 1._o which_o act_v as_o they_o will_v inform_v your_o lordship_n notwithstanding_o all_o your_o former_a vaunt_n and_o brag_n of_o divine_a right_n that_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n archdeacon_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a person_n of_o this_o realm_n have_v no_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a but_o by_o under_o and_o from_o the_o king_n royal_a majesty_n to_o who_o by_o holy_a scripture_n all_o authority_n and_o power_n be_v whole_o give_v to_o hear_v and_o determine_v all_o manner_n cause_v ecclesiastical_a and_o to_o correct_v vice_n and_o sin_n whatsoever_o and_o to_o all_o such_o person_n as_o his_o reign_v majesty_n shall_v appoint_v thereunto_o that_o all_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a be_v derive_v and_o deduct_v from_o the_o king_n majesty_n as_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o realm_n of_o england_n and_o so_o just_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o clergy_n thereof_o that_o all_o court_n ecclesiastical_a within_o the_o realm_n be_v then_o and_o now_o aught_o to_o be_v though_o they_o be_v not_o keep_v by_o no_o other_o power_n or_o authority_n either_o foreign_a or_o within_o the_o realm_n but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n only_o and_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o some_o special_a commission_n or_o letter_n patent_n under_o his_o majesty_n great_a seal_n and_o in_o his_o name_n and_o right_v alone_o that_o all_o power_n of_o visitation_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a state_n and_o person_n much_o more_o than_o of_o our_o university_n
marcte_n sebotho_n bishop_n of_o augusta_n everhardus_fw-la bishop_n of_o reform_v vlricus_n bishop_n of_o saltsburg_n conradus_n bishop_n of_o hildesheim_n conradus_n bishop_n of_o halberstat_n ludolphus_n bishop_n of_o the_o same_o see_v gunterus_n bishop_n of_o magdeburge_n josia_n odolpleus_n archbishop_n of_o vpsal_n 〈…〉_z in_o s_o 〈…〉_z hland_n with_o sundry_a other_o patriarch_n archbishop_n and_o bishop_n many_o of_o they_o by_o reason_n of_o age_n or_o sickness_n other_o out_o of_o discontent_n other_o out_o of_o a_o desire_n of_o peace_n quietness_n and_o case_n from_o unnecessary_a care_n and_o trouble_n other_o of_o they_o mere_o out_o of_o conscience_n of_o the_o unlawfulnesse_n danger_n hurt_n and_o sin_n accompany_v the_o very_a office_n of_o bishop_n as_o then_o it_o be_v and_o yet_o be_v use_v have_v voluntary_o renounce_v revive_v relinquish_v their_o patriarkship_n archbishoprike_v and_o bishoprike_v and_o betake_v themselves_o to_o a_o more_o retire_v religious_a quiet_a private_a godly_a life_n wherein_o they_o may_v serve_v god_n better_o and_o show_v those_o manifold_a occasion_n of_o evil_a and_o temptation_n unto_o which_o their_o episcopal_a function_n will_v express_v they_o both_o a_o hazard_n of_o their_o soul_n if_o these_o many_o foreign_a example_n will_v no_o way_n move_v your_o lordship_n as_o seem_v over_o strange_a we_o have_v many_o pregnant_a domestic_a precedent_n of_o like_a nature_n which_o may_v persuade_v you_o to_o make_v good_a your_o promise_n and_o induce_v you_o to_o a_o imitation_n of_o they_o for_o i_o find_v that_o 676._o robert_n gemetiensis_n s._n edmund_n boniface_n and_o robert_n kalwarby_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n richard_n beaveye_v and_o william_n de_fw-fr sancta_fw-la maria_fw-la bishop_n of_o london_n john_n bokingham_n and_o philip_n ripingdon_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n richard_n peche_n and_o roger_n de_fw-fr weseham_n bishop_n of_o coventre_n and_o lichfeild_n herman_n bishop_n of_o sherborne_n shaxton_n bishop_n of_o sabisbury_n william_n warm_a john_n voysy_n and_o miles_n coverdale_n who_o be_v deprive_v in_o queen_n mary_n time_n care_v not_o to_o return_v to_o his_o bishopric_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n settle_v himself_o in_o london_n and_o there_o lead_v a_o private_a life_n as_o a_o ordinary_a minister_n bishop_n of_o exeter_n john_n carpenter_n and_o master_n hugh_n latimer_n bishop_n of_o worcester_n the_o late_a of_o who_o edward_n skip_v for_o joy_n when_o he_o have_v cast_v off_o his_o rochet_n for_o that_o he_o be_v ease_v of_o so_o heavy_a a_o burden_n and_o bless_a god_n that_o he_o have_v give_v he_o grace_n to_o make_v himself_o a_o quondam_a bishop_n ralph_n the_o maydestan_n bishop_n of_o hereford_n putta_fw-mi quickhelmus_fw-la and_o haymo_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n the_o first_o of_o they_o become_v a_o schoolmaster_n spend_v the_o residue_n of_o his_o day_n in_o that_o kind_n of_o life_n and_o can_v never_o abide_v to_o hear_v of_o return_v to_o his_o bishopric_n dubricius_n bishop_n of_o carleon_n sulghein_n bishop_n of_o s._n david_n john_n hunden_n bishop_n of_o landaffe_n caducanus_n bishop_n of_o bangor_n elguensis_n bishop_n of_o s._n assaph_n colman_n s._n cuthbert_n egelrit_n and_o nicholas_n de_fw-fr farnham_n bishop_n of_o lindesfarne_n and_o durham_n the_o late_a of_o who_o first_o of_o all_o twice_o refuse_v and_o then_o at_o last_o resign_v his_o bishopric_n out_o of_o conscience_n paulinus_n the_o leede_v who_o peremptory_o refuse_v out_o of_o conscience_n to_o accept_v the_o bishopric_n of_o carlisle_n though_o thereunto_o elect_v and_o earnest_o entreat_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o to_o accept_v the_o place_n who_o offer●_n he_o 300._o mark_v yearly_a revenue_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o live_n there_o as_o do_v sylvester_n the_o everdon_n for_o a_o time_n to_o walter_n malclerke_n bishop_n of_o carlisle_n cedda_n coena_fw-la alias_o albert_n athelwold_n thurstan_n william_n wickwane_o archbishop_n of_o york_n who_o all_o voluntary_o most_o out_o of_o conscience_n some_o out_o of_o choler_n other_o for_o their_o ease_n some_o for_o their_o age_n other_o for_o other_o cause_n best_a know_v to_o themselves_o resign_v both_o these_o their_o archbishop_n and_o bishoprike_n be_v so_o many_o domestic_a precedent_n to_o your_o lordship_n who_o have_v long_o since_o give_v over_o the_o main_a part_n of_o your_o episcopal_a function_n preach_v now_o to_o do_v the_o like_a according_a to_o your_o joint_n and_o several_a promise_n in_o case_n you_o can_v prove_v your_o archiepiscopall_a and_o episcopal_a lurisdiction_n lure_n divino_fw-la and_o give_v a_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o these_o few_o paper_n which_o i_o presume_v you_o can_v never_o do_v since_o not_o only_o 3._o hieron_n 3._o ambrose_n 1._o chrysostom_n 101._o augustine_n 28._o sedulius_n remigius_n primasius_n theodoret_n haymo_n beda_n rabanus_n maurus_n theophilact_fw-mi 7._o isidor_n hispalensis_n 36._o alcuminus_fw-la 7_o oecumenius_n 7._o gratian_n the_o counsel_n of_o carthag●_n 4._o con●_n 22._o to_o 26._o of_o aquisgran_n c._n 8._o 10._o 11._o 144._o iuo_o camotensis_n 24._o peter_n lombard_n 3._o bruno_n and_o 28._o other_o ancient_a but_o even_o anselm_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n richard_n archbishop_n of_o ardmagh_n all_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n and_o clergy_n of_o england_n in_o 37._o h._n 8._o in_o their_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n chapter_n of_o order_n subscribe_v with_o all_o their_o name_n stokesly_a bishop_n of_o london_n tonstall_n bishop_n of_o durham_n reginald_n peacocke_n bishop_n of_o chichester_n bishop_n hooper_n bishop_n latimer_n bishop_n jewel_n bishop_n alley_n but_o even_o archbishop_n whitgift_n himself_o and_o bishop_n bridges_n to_o omit_v wickliff_n swinderby_n walter_n brute_n s._n john_n oldcastle_n master_n john_n lambert_n master_n john_n bradford_n and_o other_o our_o martyr_n master_n thomas_n beacon_n master_n john_n fox_n master_n alexander_n novel_a doctor_n whitaker_n doctor_n humphrey_n doctor_n willet_n doctor_n agray_n doctor_n taylor_n doctor_n ames_n doctor_n raynolds_n doctor_n fulke_n and_o other_o in_o book_n their_o authorize_v write_n print_v here_o in_o england_n cum_fw-la privilegio_fw-la and_o public_a allowance_n with_o the_o forecited_a statute_n of_o our_o realm_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n patent_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o 6._o in_o express_a term_n conclude_v your_o archiepiscopall_a and_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n to_o over_o other_o minister_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a human_a invention_n long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o prevent_v or_o rather_o as_o the_o event_n have_v ever_o since_o prove_v to_o engender_v foment_n &_o occasion_n all_o schism_n faction_n error_n and_o disorder_n in_o the_o church_n when_o as_o 28._o christ_n himself_o and_o 14_o his_o apostle_n since_o ordain_v a_o parity_n a_o equality_n both_o among_o his_o apostle_n and_o minister_n and_o ever_o institute_v many_o bishop_n elder_n over_o every_o particular_a church_n but_o never_o any_o one_o bishop_n or_o minister_n over_o many_o as_o the_o best_a mean_n to_o preserve_v unity_n and_o root_n out_o sin_n occasion_v only_o by_o the_o pride_n ambitious_a couvetousnesse_n power_n and_o tyranny_n of_o domineer_a prelate_n thus_o crave_v pardon_n for_o my_o boldness_n in_o press_v your_o lordship_n like_o two_o honest_a plain_a deal_n man_n to_o make_v good_a your_o word_n that_o so_o we_o may_v once_o again_o become_v fellow-brethren_n and_o walk_v hand_n in_o hand_n together_o like_a equal_n purpose_n without_o that_o infinite_a lordly_a distance_n which_o be_v now_o between_o we_o i_o take_v my_o leave_n and_o rest_v your_o lordship_n faithful_a monitor_n a._n b._n c._n a_o brief_a exhortation_n to_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o england_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o present_a pestilence_n my_o lord_n for_o so_o you_o style_v sabbath-day_n yourselves_o and_o will_v be_v entitle_v by_o all_o man_n notwithstanding_o the_o 3_o lord_n own_o inhibition_n to_o the_o contrary_a the_o prophet_n isaiah_n c._n 26._o 9_o have_v inform_v i_o that_o when_o god_n judgement_n be_v on_o the_o earth_n the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o world_n will_v learn_v righteousness_n and_o who_o know_v whither_o your_o lordship_n as_o proper_o inhabitant_n if_o not_o servant_n and_o lover_n to_o of_o the_o world_n as_o any_o of_o what_o ever_o profession_n though_o you_o 10._o shall_v not_o be_v so_o may_v not_o now_o in_o this_o time_n of_o pestilence_n when_o god_n judgement_n be_v everywhere_o so_o rife_o among_o we_o learn_fw-mi righteousness_n as_o well_o as_o other_o if_o you_o think_v not_o yourselves_o to_o wise_a to_o learn_v to_o old_a to_o be_v instruct_v if_o any_o man_n will_v but_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o teach_v you_o harken_v therefore_o i_o beseech_v you_o as_o you_o tender_v either_o the_o preservation_n of_o your_o life_n in_o this_o time_n of_o mortality_n or_o the_o salvation_n of_o your_o soul_n in_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n or_o the_o life_n and_o soul_n of_o his_o majesty_n subject_n commit_v to_o your_o pastoral_a charge_n to_o a_o short_a
sin_n upon_o he_o levit._fw-la 19_o 17._o prov._n 9_o 8._o eccles_n 9_o 5._o and_o so_o be_v every_o magistrate_n to_o do_v nehem._n 13._o 11._o to_o 31._o psal_n 141._o 5._o this_o therefore_o be_v no_o argument_n of_o any_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n the_o rather_o because_o this_o rebuke_n be_v to_o be_v public_o in_o the_o church_n before_o all_o not_o in_o a_o private_a chamber_n or_o consistory_n court_n as_o all_o expositor_n accord_n in_o which_o our_o bishop_n pronounce_v their_o censure_n obj._n 5._o the_o five_o argument_n to_o prove_v timothy_n a_o bishop_n be_v the_o 1_o tim._n 5_o 19_o against_o a_o elder_a receive_v not_o a_o accusation_n but_o before_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n he_o have_v power_n to_o receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o minister_n that_o so_o he_o may_v correct_v they_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a non_fw-la sequitur_fw-la for_o 1._o he_o may_v have_v this_o power_n to_o receive_v such_o accusation_n as_o a_o evangelist_n and_o paul_n coadjutor_n second_o as_o paul_n delegate_n or_o official_a as_o our_o bishop_n official_o vicar_n and_o chauncellor_n now_o exercise_v episcopal_a jurisdiction_n under_o they_o as_o their_o substitute_n only_o not_o by_o any_o inherent_a episcopal_a dignity_n or_o authority_n in_o themselves_o three_o he_o may_v do_v it_o by_o the_o appointement_n and_o mutual_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n who_o have_v power_n in_o all_o case_n of_o difference_n to_o constitute_v any_o man_n a_o judge_n though_o no_o bishop_n 1._o cor._n 6_o 1_o to_o 7._o four_o he_o may_v do_v it_o only_o as_o a_o elder_a elder_n have_v power_n to_o rule_v well_o 1._o tim._n 5._o 17._o and_o so_o by_o consequence_n to_o receive_v accusation_n and_o to_o correct_v delinquent_n by_o reproof_n or_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n with_o the_o consequent_a of_o the_o congregation_n 1_o cor._n 5_o 4_o 5._o 11_o 12_o c._n 6_o 1_o to_o 7._o gal._n 6_o 1._o 2._o thessaly_n 3._o 14_o 15._o five_o i_o have_v almost_o add_v that_o he_o may_v have_v do_v it_o as_o a_o ecclesiastical_a commissioner_n but_o that_o i_o consider_v that_o he_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o a_o elder_a but_o under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n at_o least_o first_o examine_v and_o our_o jacobi_fw-la ecclesiastical_a commissioner_n and_o bishop_n be_v so_o far_o from_o this_o divine_a apostolical_a precept_n by_o which_o they_o will_v prove_v timothy_n and_o themselves_o to_o be_v bishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la that_o they_o will_v pursevante_n silence_n suspend_v imprison_v minister_n and_o elder_n and_o put_v they_o to_o self_n accuse_v one_o ex_fw-la officio_fw-la oath_n and_o upon_o every_o jealousy_n suspicion_n and_o private_a accusation_n of_o any_o drunkard_n rascal_n or_o without_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n or_o accuser_n first_o examine_v against_o they_o and_o bring_v face_n to_o face_n a_o direct_a proof_n that_o neither_o they_o nor_o their_o proceed_n be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la answ_n 2._o second_o i_o answer_v that_o by_o elder_a in_o this_o text_n as_o 951._o many_o conceive_v be_v not_o mean_v a_o presbyter_n or_o minister_n but_o a_o ancient_a man_n as_o it_o be_v take_v in_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n so_o as_o it_o prove_v not_o that_o timothy_n have_v any_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o elder_n that_o be_v minister_n of_o ephesus_n who_o rule_v that_o church_n v_o 17._o and_o ●w_o 〈…〉_z bishop_n of_o it_o acts._n 20_o 28._o where_o paul_n enjoin_v they_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o as_o have_v no_o superintendent_n paramount_n they_o not_o give_v timothy_n any_o charge_n to_o take_v heed_n to_o they_o three_o admit_v these_o elder_n be_v minister_n yet_o timothy_n have_v no_o judiciary_n pour_v over_o they_o to_o suspend_v or_o correct_v they_o since_o v_o 〈◊〉_d he_o be_v express_o enjoin_v not_o to_o rebuke_v a_o elder_a but_o entreat_v he_o as_o a_o father_n which_o be_v far_o from_o give_v he_o any_o such_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n over_o they_o as_o our_o bishop_n now_o exercise_v and_o usurp_v use_v godly_a minister_n and_o ra●ing_v they_o rather_o like_o dog_n and_o scullion_n than_o elder_n four_o the_o word_n be_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o excommunicate_v suspend_v convent_n or_o censure_v a_o elder_a but_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o he_o but_o before_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n now_o to_o condemn_v or_o censure_v be_v one_o thing_n to_o receive_v a_o accusation_n another_o the_o first_o not_o but_o a_o judge_n or_o chief_a officer_n can_v do_v the_o second_o every_o register_n clerk_n informer_n or_o under_o officer_n yea_o every_o private_a christian_a be_v capable_a to_o receive_v a_o accusation_n and_o every_o ordinary_a minister_n too_o against_o another_o superior_a to_o he_o in_o age_n estate_n or_o place_n either_o private_o to_o admonish_v he_o that_o be_v accuse_v of_o his_o fault_n or_o to_o reproove_v he_o for_o it_o or_o to_o counsel_v he_o how_o to_o repent_v and_o redress_v it_o or_o to_o comfort_v he_o if_o he_o be_v deject_v with_o it_o or_o to_o inform_v against_o he_o to_o the_o magistrate_n or_o whole_a congregation_n or_o to_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o his_o amendment_n math._n 18._o 15._o 16._o 17._o levit._fw-la 19_o 7._o gal._n 6._o 1._o 2._o thess_n 3._o 14._o 15._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 20._o 24._o tit._n 1._o 10._o to_o 14._o 2._o johan._n 10._o 11._o jud._n 22._o 23._o which_o well_o expound_v this_o text_n five_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o text_n be_v this_o that_o timothy_n and_o other_o christian_n of_o what_o quality_n soever_o especial_o minister_n shall_v not_o light_o receive_v or_o believe_v any_o ill_a report_n chief_o of_o a_o elder_a or_o minister_n without_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o by_o two_o of_o three_o able_a witness_n as_o will_v plain_o appear_v by_o paralel_v it_o with_o psal_n 15._o 3._o numb_a 35._o 30._o deut._n 17._o 6._o c._n 19_o 15._o hebr._n 10._o 28._o and_o with_o math._n 18._o 15._o 16._o 17._o where_o our_o saviour_n say_v thus_o moreover_o if_o thy_o brother_n shall_v trespass_n against_o thou_o go_v and_o tell_v he_o his_o fault_n between_o he_o and_o thou_o alone_o if_o he_o shall_v hear_v thou_o thou_o have_v gain_v thy_o brother_n but_o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v thou_o then_o take_v with_o thou_o two_o or_o three_o more_o that_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n every_o word_n may_v be_v establish_v and_o if_o he_o shall_v neglect_v to_o hear_v they_o tell_v it_o to_o the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o neglect_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o beathen_a man_n and_o publican_n a_o perfect_a commentary_n on_o this_o text_n of_o paul_n and_o a_o direct_a censure_n of_o our_o bishop_n ex_fw-la officio_fw-la oath_n and_o proceed_n by_o the_o party_n own_o self-accusing_a oath_n and_o answer_v without_o or_o before_o witness_v produce_v 6._o this_o text_n admit_v it_o give_v power_n to_o timothy_n to_o take_v accusation_n against_o a_o elder_a before_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n yet_o it_o exclude_v not_o the_o other_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n from_o have_v like_o power_n with_o he_o it_o give_v he_o not_o any_o sole_a power_n to_o hear_v and_o determine_v complaint_n without_o the_o other_o elder_n assistance_n or_o consent_n but_o together_o with_o they_o math._n 18_o 19_o 1_o tim._n 5_o 17._o acts._n 20_o 28._o hence_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 23._o and_o after_o it_o gratian._n caus_n 15._o quaest_n 7._o cap._n nullus_fw-la decree_n that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v hear_v no_o man_n cause_n without_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o clerk_n and_o that_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n shall_v be_v void_a unless_o it_o be_v confirm_v with_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o clergy_n yea_o gratian_n in_o that_o place_n prove_v out_o of_o the_o counsel_n of_o hispalis_n agatha_n the_o first_o carthage_n the_o second_o and_o four_o gregory_n who_o word_n and_o canon_n he_o recite_v at_o large_a that_o a_o minister_n presbyter_n or_o deacon_n can_v be_v punish_v or_o deprive_v by_o the_o bishop_n alone_o but_o by_o a_o synod_n or_o council_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n can_v hear_v or_o determine_v the_o cause_n of_o cleargyman_n alone_o without_o associate_a the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n or_o other_o adjoin_a bishop_n with_o he_o for_o which_o cause_n more_o many_o ancient_a counsel_n deny_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v two_o counsel_n keep_v in_o each_o province_n every_o year_n to_o hear_v and_o determine_v all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n and_o controversy_n this_o text_n therefore_o prove_v nothing_o for_o timothy_n ecclesiastical_a or_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n be_v write_v rather_o for_o the_o church_n and_o minister_n future_a
so_o no_o diocaesan_n bishop_n as_o our_o prelate_n and_o their_o flatterer_n vain_o pretend_v timothy_n therefore_o be_v neither_o a_o bishop_n nor_o first_o sole_z or_o any_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n or_o of_o any_o other_o place_n or_o if_o a_o bishop_n no_o diocaesan_n bishop_n but_o of_o one_o church_n and_o congregation_n only_o as_o these_o premise_n evidence_n all_o our_o prelate_n inference_n draw_v from_o his_o example_n to_o prove_v their_o episcopal_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n hang_v upon_o his_o episcopal_a rochet_n only_o fall_v quite_o to_o ground_n and_o their_o episcopal_a authority_n together_o with_o it_o i_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o next_o question_n wherein_o i_o shall_v likewise_o discuss_v whether_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n not_o to_o presbyter_n and_o whether_o this_o paradox_n of_o the_o prelate_n be_v true_a that_o ordainer_n be_v great_a in_o jurisdiction_n and_o degree_n than_o those_o that_o be_v ordain_v to_o wit_n whether_o titus_n be_v ever_o bishop_n or_o archbishop_n of_o crete_n 2._o what_o ever_o the_o common_a bruit_n and_o error_n of_o these_o or_o former_a time_n conceive_v under_o correction_n i_o persuade_v myself_o that_o titus_n be_v no_o bishop_n nor_o archbishop_n of_o crete_n and_o that_o for_o these_o ensue_a reason_n first_o because_o the_o scripture_n never_o style_v he_o a_o bishop_n nor_o s._n paul_n who_o often_o style_v he_o his_o partner_n and_o fellow-helper_n concern_v the_o corinthian_n not_o cretan_n the_o messenger_n of_o the_o church_n not_o bishop_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 8_o 23_o 6_o 16._o his_o son_n titus_n 1_o 6_o his_o brother_n 2._o cor._n 7._o 6_o 13_o 14._o never_a bishop_n as_o some_o will_v make_v he_o second_o because_o his_o chief_a employment_n be_v to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n after_o that_o he_o have_v be_v leave_v by_o paul_n in_o crect_n as_o paul_n partner_n and_o fellow-helper_n in_o that_o church_n 2._o cor._n 2._o 13._o c._n 7._o 6._o 13._o c._n 8._o 6._o 16._o 23._o c._n 12_o 18._o three_o because_o he_o be_v paul_n companion_n attendant_z partner_n fellow-helper_n messenger_n fix_v to_o no_o settle_a place_n of_o residence_n as_o bishop_n be_v 2._o cor._n 2._o 13._o c._n 7._o 6._o 13._o c._n 8._o 6._o 16._o 23._o c._n 12._o 18._o gal._n 2_o 1._o 3._o 2._o tim._n 4._o 10._o send_v by_o he_o from_o rome_n long_o after_o his_o be_v in_o crete_n into_o dalmatia_n 2._o tim._n 4._o 10._o four_o because_o paul_n write_v express_o to_o he_o tit._n 1._o 5._o not_o that_o he_o ordain_v he_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n of_o crete_n but_o that_o he_o leave_v he_o in_o crect_n for_o a_o season_n for_o this_o cause_n that_o he_o shall_v set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v and_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n as_o he_o have_v appoint_v he_o therefore_o be_v he_o there_o only_o as_o paul_n vicar_n general_a commissary_n or_o substitute_n to_o order_v those_o thing_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o have_v appoint_v he_o which_o paul_n can_v not_o dispatch_v while_o he_o be_v reside_v not_o as_o the_o archbishop_n or_o lord_n bishop_n of_o crect_n to_o order_v all_o thing_n there_o by_o his_o own_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n as_o he_o list_v himself_o five_o he_o express_o charge_v he_o to_o come_v to_o he_o diligent_o to_o nicopolis_n when_o he_o shall_v scent_v arthemas_n or_o tychicus_n to_o he_o for_o there_o he_o intend_v to_o winter_n tit._n 3._o 12._o by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o his_o stay_n in_o crect_n by_o paul_n appointement_n be_v very_o short_a not_o above_o half_a a_o year_n if_o so_o much_o after_o which_o we_o never_o read_v he_o return_v thither_o though_o we_o find_v he_o be_v send_v to_o corinth_n and_o dalmatia_n that_o he_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n with_o paul_n and_o come_v to_o he_o during_o his_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n gal._n 2._o 1._o 3._o 2._o cor._n 2._o 13._o c._n 7._o 13._o 14._o c._n 8._o 6_o 16._o 23._o c._n 12._o 8._o 2._o tim._n 4._o 10._o his_o short_a abode_n therefore_o in_o crect_n without_o return_v thither_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v no_o bishop_n six_o paul_n charge_v he_o to_o bring_v zenas_n the_o lawyer_n and_o and_o apollo_n diligent_o on_o their_o way_n that_o nothing_o may_v be_v want_v to_o they_o tit._n 3._o 13._o now_o it_o be_v very_o unlikely_a that_o a_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n of_o crete_n wherein_o be_v 19_o 90._o wall_a city_n will_v stoop_v so_o low_a as_o to_o wait_v thus_o upon_o lawyer_n as_o zenas_n or_o a_o disciple_n as_o apollo_n be_v unless_o he_o be_v far_o more_o humble_a than_o any_o archbishop_n or_o prelate_n in_o these_o our_o time_n who_o be_v common_o so_o insolent_o proud_a as_o to_o disdain_v all_o familiar_a conversation_n with_o lawyer_n or_o minister_n seaventh_o paul_n leave_v titus_n bishop_n of_o no_o one_o city_n in_o crete_n and_o he_o express_o enjoin_v he_o to_o ordain_v not_o one_o but_o many_o elder_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n in_o every_o city_n of_o crete_n tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o where_o there_o be_v no_o less_o than_o 90._o wall_a city_n in_o homerus_n time_n which_o elder_n be_v no_o other_o but_o bishop_n and_o so_o term_v by_o he_o v_o 7._o for_o a_o bishop_n must_v be_v blameless_a etc._n etc._n as_o hierom._n chrysostome_n ambrose_n theodoret_n sedulius_n primasius_n remigius_n beda_n raubanus_n maurus_n bruno_n theophilact_fw-mi oecumenius_n anselm_n lyra_n hugo_n cardinalis_fw-la aquinas_n with_o other_o modern_a commentator_n on_o this_o text_n accord_n if_o then_o paul_n give_v express_v direction_n to_o titus_n to_o ordain_v many_o elder_n and_o bishop_n in_o every_o city_n of_o crete_n constitute_v he_o a_o bishop_n in_o none_o of_o they_o that_o we_o read_v of_o a_o apparent_a argument_n that_o he_o be_v no_o bishop_n there_o because_o he_o have_v there_o no_o bishop_n see_v at_o all_o and_o be_v no_o sole_a bishop_n of_o any_o one_o city_n it_o be_v not_o probable_a that_o he_o constitute_v he_o sole_a archbishop_n or_o bishop_n of_o all_o crect_n which_o have_v 812._o ancient_o no_o less_o than_o 4._o archbishop_n and_o 21._o bishop_n in_o it_o it_o be_v the_o apostle_n practise_v to_o place_v many_o bishop_n and_o elder_n in_o one_o church_n but_o never_o one_o bishop_n or_o archbishop_n over_o many_o church_n phil._n 1._o 1._o acts._n 20._o 28._o hence_o 621_o athanasius_n chrysostome_n oecumenius_n and_o theophilact_fw-mi on_o titus_n 1._o 5._o 7._o write_v thus_o here_o he_o will_v have_v bishop_n to_o be_v understand_v for_o presbyter_n or_o minister_n as_o we_o have_v elsewhere_o often_o say_v neither_o very_o will_v he_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o whole_a island_n to_o be_v permit_v or_o grant_v to_o one_o man_n but_o that_o every_o one_o shall_v have_v his_o own_o proper_a cure_n &_o charge_n allot_v he_o for_o he_o know_v that_o the_o labour_n &_o pain_n will_v be_v the_o light_a and_o that_o the_o people_n will_v be_v govern_v with_o great_a diligence_n if_o that_o the_o doctor_n or_o teacher_n shall_v not_o be_v distract_v with_o the_o government_n of_o many_o church_n but_o shall_v only_o give_v himself_o to_o the_o government_n of_o one_o and_o study_v to_o compose_v and_o adorn_v it_o with_o his_o manner_n so_o also_o peter_n lombard_n episcopus_fw-la alphonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n 210._o doctor_n barnes_n and_o other_o on_o and_o from_o this_o text_n determine_v eight_o all_o general_o 616._o accord_n that_o archbishop_n yea_o metropolitan_n bishop_n themselves_o be_v not_o of_o divine_a or_o apo_n stolicall_a but_o papal_a and_o humane_a constitution_n witness_v pope_n nicolas_n apud_fw-la gratianum_fw-la distinct_a 22._o c._n 1._o omnes_fw-la sive_fw-la patriarchae_fw-la cujuslibet_fw-la apicem_fw-la sive_fw-la metropolis_n primatus_fw-la aut_fw-la episcopatuum_fw-la cathedras_fw-la vel_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la sive_fw-la cujuscunque_fw-la ordinis_fw-la dignitatem_fw-la 165._o institvit_fw-la romana_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la which_o pope_n anacletus_fw-la in_o his_o 3._o epist._n c._n 3._o do_v likewise_o aver_v and_o pope_n lucinus_n and_o clement_n in_o gratian_n distinct_a 80._o affirm_v as_o much_o inform_v we_o that_o archbishop_n and_o primate_fw-la be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o hathenish_a arch-flaman_n and_o to_o be_v place_v only_o in_o those_o city_n where_o the_o arch-flaman_n have_v their_o see_z with_o which_o peter_n lombard_n accord_v lib._n 4._o distinct._n 24._o hence_o our_o other_o historian_n record_v of_o king_n lucius_n the_o first_o christian_a prince_n of_o this_o our_o realm_n that_o he_o institute_v 3._o archbishopricke_n and_o 25._o bishoprickes_a and_o bishop_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o 3._o arch-flaman_n and_o 25._o flamen_n change_v their_o see_v into_o bishopricke_n and_o archbishoprickes_a by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o archbishop_n patriarch_n and_o metropolitan_o
institute_v only_o at_o first_o by_o 18._o several_a counsel_n and_o prince_n be_v no_o divine_a or_o apostolical_a but_o only_o a_o humane_a institution_n this_o all_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n and_o clergy_n of_o england_n in_o their_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n dedicate_v to_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o fol._n 59_o 60._o resolve_n in_o these_o term_n it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v neither_o in_o scripture_n neither_o in_o the_o write_n of_o any_o authentical_a doctor_n or_o auctor_fw-la of_o the_o church_n be_v within_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o christ_n do_v ever_o make_v or_o institute_v any_o distinction_n or_o difference_n to_o be_v in_o the_o preeminence_n of_o power_n order_n or_o jurisdiction_n between_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o between_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o but_o that_o they_o be_v all_o equal_a in_o power_n authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o that_o there_o be_v now_o and_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n any_o such_o diversity_n or_o difference_n among_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v devise_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o conservation_n of_o good_a order_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o either_o by_o the_o consent_n and_o authority_n or_o else_o at_o least_o by_o the_o permission_n and_o sufferance_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o civil_a power_n for_o the_o time_n rule_v for_o the_o say_a father_n consider_v the_o great_a and_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o christian_a man_n so_o large_o increase_v through_o the_o world_n and_o take_v example_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n think_v it_o expedient_a to_o make_v a_o order_n of_o degree_n to_o be_v among_o bishop_n and_o spiritual_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o ordain_v some_o to_o be_v patriarch_n some_o to_o be_v metropolitan_o some_o to_o be_v archbishop_n some_o to_o be_v bishop_n and_o to_o they_o do_v limit_v several_o not_o only_o their_o certain_a diocese_n and_o province_n wherein_o they_o shall_v exercise_v their_o power_n and_o not_o exceed_v the_o same_o but_o also_o certain_a bound_n and_o limit_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o be_v aver_v by_o learned_a bishop_n hooper_n in_o his_o exposition_n upon_o the_o 23._o psalm_n fol._n 40._o who_o say_v that_o archbishop_n be_v first_o ordain_v in_o constantine_n time_n yea_o 616._o archbishop_n whitgift_n himself_o confess_v as_o much_o that_o archbishop_n be_v neither_o of_o divine_a or_o apostolical_a but_o humane_a institution_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o 1620._o patrick_n adamson_n archbishop_n of_o s._n andrew_n in_o scotland_n in_o his_o public_a recantation_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o fife_n in_o scotland_n anno_fw-la 1591._o profess_v sincere_o ex_fw-la animo_fw-la that_o bishop_n and_o minister_n by_o god_n word_n be_v all_o equal_a and_o the_o very_a same_o that_o the_o hierarchy_n and_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n over_o other_o minister_n nullo_n nititur_fw-la verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la fundamento_fw-la have_v no_o foundation_n at_o all_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o be_v a_o mere_a humane_a institution_n long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n from_o whence_o the_o antichristian_a papacis_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v both_o its_o rise_n and_o progress_n and_o that_o for_o 500_o year_n last_o pass_v it_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a instrument_n of_o persecute_v and_o suppress_v the_o truth_n and_o saint_n of_o god_n in_o all_o country_n and_o kingdom_n as_o all_o history_n manifest_v thus_o this_o archbishop_n in_o his_o palinody_n disclaim_v not_o only_a archbishop_n but_o ever_o diocaesan_n bishop_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a but_o only_o of_o humane_a institution_n long_o after_o the_o apostle_n give_v over_o his_o archbishopric_n thereupon_o and_o live_v a_o poor_a deject_a life_n this_o be_v then_o grant_v on_o all_o hand_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o titus_n can_v not_o be_v bishop_n of_o all_o crete_n for_o than_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o archbishop_n have_v divers_a bishop_n under_o he_o those_o elder_n which_o he_o place_v in_o every_o city_n of_o crete_n be_v no_o other_o but_o bishop_n tit._n 1._o 7._o as_o all_o acknowledge_v and_o archbishop_n be_v not_o institute_v till_o after_o the_o apostle_n and_o titus_n day_n for_o these_o reason_n i_o conceive_v that_o titus_n be_v not_o bishop_n of_o crete_n have_v no_o episcopal_a or_o archiepiscopall_a see_v there_o appoint_v to_o he_o which_o learned_a 581._o gersonius_fw-la bucerus_n have_v at_o large_a manifest_v to_o such_o who_o will_v take_v pain_n to_o peruse_v he_o obj._n 1_o if_o any_o object_n 1._o that_o the_o postscript_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n style_v he_o titus_n ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o cretan_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v bishop_n or_o archbishop_n of_o crete_n answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o as_o this_o and_o all_o other_o postscript_n be_v 333._o no_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o epistle_n as_o 499._o mr._n perkins_n work_v prove_v at_o large_a but_o a_o addition_n of_o some_o private_a person_n since_o as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o word_n themselves_o in_o the_o preterimperfect_a tense_n and_o three_o person_n it_o be_v write_v to_o titus_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o no_o convince_a authority_n so_o this_o clause_n ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o cretan_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o postscript_n but_o a_o late_a appendix_n to_o it_o not_o find_v in_o any_o of_o the_o copy_n of_o this_o epistle_n which_o the_o father_n follow_v in_o their_o commentary_n in_o few_o or_o no_o ancient_a greek_n latin_a or_o english_a copy_n and_o translation_n of_o this_o epistle_n in_o few_o or_o no_o testament_n or_o late_a commentator_n and_o have_v titus_n be_v bishop_n of_o crete_n it_o be_v like_o paul_n will_v have_v give_v he_o this_o title_n in_o the_o epistle_n where_o he_o style_v he_o titus_n his_o own_o son_n after_o the_o common_a faith_n c._n 1._o v._n 4._o as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o postscript_n which_o in_o truth_n be_v none_o of_o he_o but_o some_o other_o perchance_o oecumenius_n his_o addition_n the_o first_o that_o mention_n it_o 1050._o year_n after_o christi_n since_o he_o speak_v of_o bishop_n by_o name_n in_o that_o epistle_n tit._n 1._o 7._o but_o of_o this_o see_v more_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o postscript_n of_o timothy_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o postscript_n be_v direct_o false_a for_o it_o say_v that_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v from_o nicopoll_n of_o macedonia_n now_o it_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o 12._o verse_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o this_o very_a epistle_n that_o paul_n be_v not_o at_o nicopolis_n when_o he_o write_v it_o but_o at_o some_o other_o place_n for_o he_o write_v thus_o to_o titus_n when_o i_o shall_v send_v artemas_n unto_o thou_o or_o tychicus_n be_v diligent_a ●ocome_n unto_o i_o to_o nicopolis_n for_o there_o not_o here_o i_o have_v intend_v to_o winter_n now_o have_v paul_n then_o be_v at_o nicopolis_n he_o will_v have_v write_v thus_o for_o here_o not_o there_o i_o have_v intend_v to_o winter_n there_o be_v ever_o speak_v of_o a_o place_n from_o which_o we_o be_v absent_a here_o only_o of_o a_o place_n present_a the_o postscript_n therefore_o be_v false_a as_o 499._o mr._n perkins_n work_v hence_o conclude_v can_v be_v no_o part_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n nor_o epistle_n none_o of_o paul_n pen_n but_o a_o mere_a ignorant_a appendix_n of_o some_o scribe_n or_o commentator_n of_o after_o time_n and_o so_o no_o solid_a proof_n to_o manifest_v titus_n bishop_n or_o archbishop_n of_o crete_n not_o at_o nicopolis_n when_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v obj._n 2._o if_o they_o second_o object_n that_o paul_n leave_v titus_n in_o crete_n to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v tit._n 1._o 5._o ergo_fw-la he_o be_v a_o bishop_n answ_n 2._o i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a inconsequent_a and_o i_o may_v argue_v in_o the_o like_a nature_n our_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n especial_o those_o who_o turn_v courtier_n counsellor_n of_o state_n and_o nonresident_n leave_v 120._o their_o archdeacon_n chaunceller_n commissary_n vicar_n general_a and_o official_o to_o visit_v order_n correct_v their_o diocese_n and_o to_o set_v in_o order_n those_o ceremony_n altar_n image_n and_o church_n ornament_n which_o be_v well_o want_v now_o too_o much_o abound_v in_o they_o ergo_fw-la archdeacon_n chaunceller_n vicar_n general_a and_o official_o be_v archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o those_o diocese_n the_o king_n send_v his_o judge_n commissioner_n and_o under_o officer_n to_o some_o county_n or_o city_n to_o set_v cause_n county_n people_n arm_n fort_n city_n in_o good_a order_n and_o to_o see_v defect_n in_o these_o supply_v ergo_fw-la judge_n commissioner_n and_o officer_n be_v king_n churchwarden_n ought_v
but_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o profession_n or_o degree_n of_o doctorship_n itself_o yea_o 7._o every_o minister_n make_v by_o any_o bishop_n be_v as_o much_o as_o true_o and_o full_o a_o minister_n as_o the_o bishop_n as_o all_o protestant_n and_o papist_n do_v acknowledge_v therefore_o the_o same_o in_o specie_fw-la with_o and_o equal_a to_o a_o bishop_n our_o bishop_n pretend_v themselves_o spiritual_a father_n and_o they_o call_v the_o minister_n ordain_v by_o they_o son_n so_o 75._o epiphanius_n long_o since_o argue_v against_o aërius_n as_o therefore_o in_o natural_a generation_n a_o man_n beget_v a_o man_n a_o beast_n a_o beast_n and_o in_o civil_a respect_n a_o gentleman_n beget_v a_o gentleman_n a_o peasant_n a_o peasant_n etc._n etc._n but_o not_o a_o man_n a_o beast_n a_o beast_n a_o man_n a_o gentleman_n a_o peasant_n nor_o a_o peasant_n a_o gentleman_n so_o bishop_n when_o they_o engender_v natural_a child_n beget_v they_o as_o man_n not_o bishop_n and_o their_o child_n be_v as_o much_o man_n as_o themselves_o when_o they_o spiritual_o ordain_v or_o engender_v minister_n they_o do_v it_o only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n not_o bishop_n and_o those_o they_o thus_o beget_v and_o ordain_v be_v as_o much_o minister_n as_o themselves_o when_o they_o beget_v and_o consecrate_v bishop_n they_o do_v it_o as_o they_o be_v bishop_n and_o those_o thus_o beget_v and_o consecrate_v be_v as_o much_o bishop_n as_o themselves_o since_o therefore_o they_o ordain_v minister_n only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n not_o as_o bishop_n as_o be_v clear_a else_o it_o be_v a_o unnatural_a a_o incongruous_a yea_o a_o monstrous_a generation_n to_o beget_v one_o of_o a_o different_a kind_n order_n quality_n and_o degree_n from_o themselves_o and_o as_o much_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v beget_v a_o beast_n a_o horse_n or_o a_o ass_n and_o since_o every_o minister_n be_v as_o much_o as_o complete_o a_o minister_n every_o way_n as_o the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n who_o ordain_v he_o how_o this_o proposition_n can_v be_v true_a that_o the_o ordainer_n be_v high_a in_o jurisdiction_n or_o different_a jure_fw-la divino_fw-la in_o order_n or_o degree_n from_o the_o ordain_v i_o can_v yet_o perceive_v neither_o can_v our_o prelate_n ever_o make_v it_o good_a we_o know_v there_o be_v now_o divers_a minister_n live_v who_o not_o only_o baptize_v but_o likewise_o ordain_v some_o of_o our_o bishop_n to_o be_v minister_n and_o lay_v hand_n upon_o they_o with_o the_o bishop_n at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o ordination_n yea_o every_o of_o our_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n be_v first_o ordain_v minister_n by_o minister_n before_o they_o be_v make_v bishop_n or_o arcbishop_n and_o the_o first_o bishop_n that_o be_v ordain_v in_o the_o church_n paramount_n minister_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o minister_n as_o hierom_n write_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o evagrius_n and_o all_o since_o acknowledge_v out_o of_o he_o be_v these_o minister_n therefore_o in_o point_n of_o order_n honour_n jurisdiction_n dignity_n and_o degree_n great_a than_o our_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n if_o so_o than_o the_o controversy_n be_v at_o end_n and_o the_o truth_n most_o apparent_a that_o our_o minister_n be_v great_a and_o high_a in_o degree_n then_o our_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n not_o our_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n high_o great_a than_o they_o as_o they_o vain_o contend_v if_o not_o than_o the_o prelate_n maxim_n on_o which_o they_o ground_n their_o hierarchy_n be_v most_o false_a in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o they_o urge_v it_o and_o so_o will_v yield_v no_o supportation_n to_o their_o hierarchy_n three_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o proposition_n of_o they_o be_v warrant_v by_o no_o scripture_n nor_o back_v with_o any_o convince_a reason_n draw_v from_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o prove_v nothing_o either_o for_o titus_n his_o episcopal_a authority_n or_o for_o bishop_n superiority_n above_o other_o minister_n by_o any_o divine_a right_n or_o institution_n as_o for_o that_o text_n of_o hebr._n 7._o 7._o and_o without_o all_o contradiction_n the_o lesser_a be_v bless_v of_o the_o great_a it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o putpose_n first_o because_o it_o it_o not_o speak_v concern_v ordination_n or_o of_o one_o minister_n ordain_v or_o bless_v another_o but_o only_o of_o melchizedech_n blessing_n of_o abraham_n and_o minister_n blessing_n of_o the_o people_n as_o the_o word_n and_o text_n all_o commentator_n joint_o testify_v second_o because_o it_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o minister_n who_o bless_v other_o only_a ministerial_o instrumental_o by_o way_n of_o duty_n and_o service_n as_o bishop_n ordain_v minister_n not_o inherent_a original_a authority_n for_o then_o minister_n shall_v be_v better_o and_o great_a than_o god_n who_o they_o bless_v and_o praise_n but_o of_o christ_n himself_o who_o by_o melchisedech_n his_o type_n bless_a abraham_n by_o his_o own_o inherent_a authority_n and_o power_n as_o the_o only_a 21._o true_a high-preist_n and_o 4._o chief_a shepherd_n of_o our_o soul_n if_o therefore_o our_o prelate_n take_v their_o maxim_n in_o this_o sense_n he_o that_o ordain_v minister_n to_o wit_n original_o by_o his_o own_o inherent_a primitive_a authority_n and_o power_n be_v great_a than_o those_o who_o be_v ordain_v in_o jurisdiction_n power_n and_o degree_n then_o the_o proposition_n thus_o interpret_v be_v true_a and_o warrant_v by_o this_o text_n but_o yet_o they_o gain_v no_o advantage_n by_o it_o because_o no_o bishop_n do_v or_o can_v ordain_v minister_n thus_o but_o 38._o only_o god_n and_o christ_n alone_o who_o minister_n and_o servant_n both_o the_o ordainer_n and_o ordain_v be_v but_o if_o th●●meane_n that_o they_o who_o ordain_v minister_n only_o instrumental_o and_o ministerial_o as_o servant_n to_o christ_n his_o church_n and_o the_o whole_a congregation_n in_o who_o the_o original_a and_o primitive_a right_n of_o ordination_n be_v only_o vest_v be_v great_a in_o jurisdiction_n order_n and_o degree_n than_o those_o who_o be_v ordain_v as_o they_o do_v and_o must_v do_v then_o the_o proposition_n be_v most_o false_a and_o not_o justify_v by_o this_o scripture_n as_o the_o premise_a instance_n manifest_v four_o admit_v this_o proposition_n true_a that_o those_o who_o be_v to_o ordain_v other_o be_v great_a in_o power_n and_o authority_n than_o the_o party_n to_o be_v ordain_v before_o their_o ordination_n full_o execute_v because_o they_o have_v a_o office_n a_o call_n of_o ministry_n which_o the_o other_o want_v in_o which_o sense_n the_o proposition_n may_v be_v true_a yet_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o ordainer_n be_v great_a in_o power_n office_n and_o authority_n than_o the_o party_n actual_o ordain_v after_o the_o ordination_n past_a and_o finish_v because_o the_o very_a end_n of_o ordination_n be_v to_o confer_v the_o self-fame_n office_n of_o ministry_n on_o the_o party_n ordain_v which_o the_o ordainer_n themselves_o have_v in_o as_o large_a and_o ample_a manner_n as_o they_o enjoy_v it_o and_o the_o party_n once_o ordain_v be_v thereby_o make_v as_o complete_a 〈◊〉_d absolute_a minister_n every_o way_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o order_n and_o office_n as_o any_o of_o those_o who_o ordain_v they_o though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v ordain_v this_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o 5_o mathias_n and_o paul_n before_o they_o be_v call_v and_o ordain_v to_o be_v apostle_n they_o be_v inferior_a to_o the_o other_o apostle_n but_o be_v once_o call_v and_o ordain_v apostle_n they_o become_v equal_a with_o the_o other_o apostle_n in_o apostolical_a power_n dignity_n and_o degree_n so_o that_o from_o all_o these_o premise_n i_o may_v conclude_v that_o this_o maxim_n of_o our_o prelate_n whereon_o they_o build_v their_o episcopal_a hierarchy_n in_o that_o sense_n they_o take_v it_o be_v most_o false_a and_o neither_o prove_v titus_n to_o be_v a_o diocaesan_n bishop_n nor_o yet_o bishop_n to_o be_v superior_a to_o other_o minister_n in_o dignity_n power_n order_n or_o degree_n by_o divine_a right_n and_o institution_n as_o they_o pretend_v they_o be_v final_o admit_v the_o proposition_n true_a yet_o it_o prove_v but_o this_o that_o bishop_n be_v superior_a to_o those_o minister_n only_o which_o themselves_o ordain_v so_o that_o if_o they_o ordain_v none_o they_o be_v superior_a to_o none_o not_o to_o those_o ordain_v by_o other_o which_o may_v be_v their_o equal_n notwithstanding_o this_o allegation_n see_v they_o be_v not_o ordain_v by_o they_o this_o proposition_n extend_v only_o to_o the_o act_n not_o to_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n if_o any_o extend_v it_o further_o in_o this_o sort_n that_o they_o who_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v minister_n be_v great_a in_o order_n jurisdiction_n degree_n and_o dignity_n than_o those_o who_o want_v this_o power_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o bishop_n suspend_v from_o ordain_v other_o either_o for_o advaunce_v unworthy_a minister_n
without_o due_a examination_n or_o make_v minister_n without_o a_o title_n as_o many_o now_o do_v for_o which_o the_o 1603._o canon_n prescribe_v they_o shall_v be_v suspend_v from_o give_v order_n for_o two_o year_n space_n be_v inferior_a in_o order_n and_o degree_n to_o bishop_n who_o may_v execute_v this_o power_n and_o ordain_v and_o so_o one_o bishop_n shall_v be_v superior_a in_o order_n and_o degree_n to_o another_o bishop_n which_o none_o ever_o yet_o affirm_v yea_o all_o our_o bishop_n be_v prohibit_v and_o disable_v by_o their_o own_o 31._o canon_n to_o ordain_v minister_n or_o deacon_n at_o any_o time_n but_o only_o at_o the_o 4._o solemn_a time_n appoint_v and_o that_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o dean_n archdea●on_n or_o two_o prebend_n at_o the_o least_o or_o of_o 4._o other_o grave_a person_n be_v master_n of_o art_n at_o least_o and_o allow_v for_o public_a preacher_n it_o will_v hereupon_o follow_v that_o bishop_n only_o at_o these_o 4._o time_n of_o the_o year_n be_v great_a in_o dignity_n and_o degree_n than_o minister_n because_o they_o may_v then_o ordain_v but_o not_o at_o other_o season_n when_o they_o have_v no_o power_n or_o authority_n to_o confer_v order_n upon_o any_o be_v restrain_v by_o the_o canon_n all_o which_o be_v lay_v together_o discover_v the_o weakennes_n the_o absurdity_n of_o this_o our_o prelate_n theory_n on_o which_o they_o build_v both_o their_o own_o &_o titus_n his_o hierarchy_n which_o now_o fall_v quite_o to_o ruin_v with_o this_o their_o sandy_a foundation_n which_o i_o have_v here_o 〈◊〉_d ever_o dissipate_v &_o subvert_v if_o i_o mistake_v not_o obj._n 5._o if_o any_o final_o object_n that_o the_o father_n stile_n titus_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o crete_n and_o timothy_n of_o ephesus_n therefore_o they_o be_v diocaesan_n bishop_n and_o superior_a in_o jurisdiction_n and_o degree_n to_o other_o minister_n and_o so_o by_o consequence_n be_v other_o diocaesan_n bishop_n as_o well_o as_o they_o answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v first_o that_o neither_o s._n paul_n nor_o s._n luke_n who_o live_v in_o their_o time_n and_o know_v they_o far_o better_a than_o any_o father_n or_o writer_n since_o ever_o so_o much_o as_o once_o term_v or_o style_v they_o bishop_n much_o less_o the_o first_o or_o sole_a diocaesan_n bishop_n of_o crete_n or_o ephesus_n which_o no_o doubt_v they_o will_v have_v do_v have_v they_o be_v in_o truth_n diocaesan_n bishop_n there_o and_o the_o name_n the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n so_o honourable_a and_o sublime_a above_o that_o of_o minister_n even_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o our_o prelate_n and_o their_o flatterer_n now_o pretend_v their_o testimony_n therefore_o who_o style_v they_o only_a 2._o minister_n or_o evangelist_n never_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o father_n and_o writer_n who_o style_v they_o bishop_n be_v neither_o acquaint_v with_o their_o person_n or_o function_n nor_o live_v in_o their_o age_n second_o no_o father_n ever_o style_v they_o or_o either_o of_o they_o a_o diocaesan_n or_o sole_a bishop_n of_o crete_n or_o ephesus_n the_o thing_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v prove_v but_o bishop_n only_o as_o they_o style_v other_o minister_n the_o name_n the_o office_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o promiscuous_o use_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n all_o presbyter_n be_v then_o call_v bishop_n and_o all_o bishop_n presbyter_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o acts._n 14._o 23._o c._n 20._o 17._o 28._o phil._n 1._o 1._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 1._o 2._o 3._o tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o 1._o tim._n 3._o 1._o 2._o 3._o 2._o john_n 1._o 3._o john_n 1._o philemon_n 9_o with_o all_o ancient_a all_o modern_a commentator_n on_o these_o text_n whence_o the_o translator_n of_o our_o last_o authorize_v english_a bible_n affix_v these_o content_n to_o titus_n 1._o 6._o to_o 10._o which_o treat_v of_o the_o quality_n of_o bishop_n how_o they_o that_o be_v to_o be_v choose_v minister_n ought_v to_o be_v qualify_v and_o the_o book_n of_o ordination_n of_o minister_n confirm_v by_o two_o 1._o several_a act_n of_o parliament_n prescribe_v the_o 1._o tim._n c._n 3._o act_n 20._o and_o titus_n 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v read_v both_o at_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n and_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n and_o so_o intimate_v yea_o interpretes_n that_o bishop_n and_o minister_n in_o the_o scripture_n language_n be_v both_o one_o in_o name_n and_o office_n and_o be_v so_o repute_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n three_o the_o father_n use_n the_o word_n elder_n and_o bishop_n promiscuous_o call_v elder_n bishop_n and_o bishop_n elder_n hence_o papias_n the_o auditor_n of_o s._n john_n and_o companion_n of_o polycarpus_n write_v thus_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o book_n 55._o it_o shall_v not_o seem_v grievous_a untome_n if_o that_o i_o compile_v in_o writing_n and_o commit_v to_o memory_n the_o thing_n which_o i_o learn_v of_o the_o elder_n if_o any_o come_v in_o place_n which_o be_v a_o follower_n of_o the_o apostle_n forthwith_o demand_v the_o word_n of_o the_o elder_n what_o andrew_n what_o peter_n what_o philip_n what_o thomas_n or_o james_n or_o john_n or_o matthew_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o lord_n disciple_n what_o ariston_n and_o the_o elder_a john_n disciple_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v here_o he_o style_v not_o only_o bishop_n but_o even_o apostle_n elder_n polycarpus_n his_o companion_n and_o coaetanian_a write_v thus_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n 96._o be_v you_o subject_a to_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n as_o to_o god_n let_v the_o presbyter_n be_v simple_a and_o merciful_a in_o all_o thing_n now_o those_o who_o he_o here_o style_v presbyter_n s._n paul_n express_o term_n bishop_n philip._n 1._o 1._o justine_n martyr_n in_o his_o second_o apology_n use_v neither_o the_o name_n bishop_n nor_o elder_a but_o term_n the_o minister_n only_o he_o who_o be_v set_v over_o the_o brithren_n he_o who_o hold_v the_o first_o place_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o deacon_n who_o hold_v the_o second_o place_n not_o to_o any_o elder_n of_o a_o inferior_a order_n to_o he_o and_o lest_o any_o one_o shall_v dream_v that_o justine_n martyr_n here_o speak_v of_o a_o bishop_n tertullian_n who_o live_v near_o about_o that_o time_n or_o within_o few_o year_n in_o his_o 694._o apology_n write_v thus_o president_n nobis_fw-la probati_fw-la quique_fw-la seniores_fw-la etc._n etc._n approve_a elder_n not_o bishop_n be_v set_v over_o we_o have_v obtain_v this_o honour_n not_o with_o any_o price_n but_o by_o a_o good_a testimony_n whence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o in_o his_o age_n every_o christian_a congregation_n have_v divers_a elder_n not_o one_o diocaesan_n bishop_n over_o it_o to_o feed_v and_o rule_v it_o according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n time_n acts._n 14._o 23._o c._n 20._o 17._o 28_o c._n 21._o 18._o philip._n 1._o 1._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 17._o tit._n 1._o 5._o james_n 5._o 14._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 1._o 2._o hence_o learned_a 16._o apollinarius_n call_v the_o bishop_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n presbyter_n and_o 23._o clemens_n alexandrinus_n relate_v the_o story_n of_o the_o young_a man_n deliver_v by_o s._n john_n to_o a_o bishop_n to_o train_v up_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n twice_o together_o call_v he_o interchaingable_o both_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o elder_a as_o meridith_n hamner_n a_o bishop_n english_v it_o so_o 20._o ireneus_fw-la one_o of_o the_o ancient_a of_o all_o the_o father_n style_v polycarpus_n bishop_n of_o smyrna_n that_o holy_a and_o apostolic_a elder_a yea_o he_o term_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o elder_n 26._o they_o say_v he_o that_o be_v elder_n before_o soter_n of_o the_o church_n which_o now_o thou_o govern_v i_o mean_v anacletus_fw-la pius_fw-la hyginus_n thelesphorus_n and_o xystus_n neither_o do_v so_o observe_v it_o themselves_o neither_o leave_v they_o any_o such_o commandment_n unto_o posterity_n and_o the_o same_o father_n adversus_fw-la haereses_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 2._o &_o l._n 4._o c._n 43._o 44._o oftentimes_o 8._o style_v bishop_n elder_n and_o elder_n bishop_n make_v presbyter_n equal_a to_o bishop_n in_o all_o respect_n and_o successor_n to_o the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o much_o as_o they_o so_o dionysius_n alexandrinus_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o xystus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 240._o write_v thus_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a brother_n repute_v to_o be_v of_o our_o church_n and_o faith_n very_a age_a &_o priusquam_fw-la ego_fw-la etiam_fw-la creatus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la and_o create_v a_o bishop_n before_o i_o be_v and_o as_o i_o think_v before_o bless_a heraclas_n be_v make_v a_o bishop_n where_o he_o express_o term_v this_o party_n who_o be_v but_o a_o minister_n or_o presbyter_n only_o in_o that_o church_n a_o bishop_n and_o say_v he_o be_v create_v a_o
lord_n flock_v for_o who_o he_o shed_v his_o blood_n and_o never_o their_o labour_n care_n and_o diligence_n herein_o until_o they_o have_v do_v all_o that_o lie_v in_o they_o according_a to_o their_o bind_a duty_n to_o bring_v all_o such_o as_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v commit_v to_o their_o charge_n unto_o that_o agreement_n of_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o to_o that_o ripeness_n and_o perfectness_n of_o age_n in_o christ_n which_o none_o of_o they_o have_v yet_o do_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o place_n leave_v among_o they_o neither_o of_o error_n in_o religion_n or_o for_o viciousness_n of_o life_n and_o that_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n they_o shall_v and_o will_v forsake_v and_o set_v aside_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v all_o worldly_a care_n and_o study_n and_o give_v themselves_o whole_o to_o this_o thing_n and_o draw_v all_o their_o care_n and_o study_v this_o way_n and_o to_o this_o end_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v and_o will_v preach_v and_o be_v faithful_a dispenser_n of_o god_n word_n in_o their_o congregation_n which_o charge_n be_v lay_v upon_o they_o by_o the_o bishop_n at_o their_o ordination_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o whole_a 1._o church_n and_o state_n of_o england_n and_o the_o book_n of_o ordination_n confirm_v by_o three_o several_a act_n of_o parliament_n the_o 8_o canon_n and_o their_o own_o subscription_n to_o it_o and_o they_o particular_o promise_v in_o a_o most_o solemn_a manner_n to_o perform_v it_o to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o their_o power_n how_o any_o bishop_n can_v by_o law_n suspend_v they_o from_o preach_v as_o long_o as_o they_o continue_v minister_n and_o be_v not_o actual_o degrade_v or_o deprive_v of_o their_o live_n for_o some_o just_a or_o lawful_a cause_n warrant_v by_o a_o express_a act_n of_o parliament_n or_o how_o any_o godly_a minister_n in_o point_n of_o law_n or_o conscience_n can_v give_v over_o his_o preach_n or_o ministry_n upon_o any_o unjust_a suspension_n inhibition_n excommunication_n or_o command_n of_o any_o bishop_n visitor_n or_o ordinary_a who_o can_v countermand_v this_o charge_n or_o book_n of_o ordination_n ratify_v by_o 3_o act_n of_o parliament_n i_o can_v conjecture_v final_o that_o if_o minister_n will_v thus_o suffer_v every_o bishop_n at_o his_o pleasure_n without_o any_o special_a commission_n from_o his_o majesty_n under_o the_o great_a seal_n of_o england_n or_o any_o just_a cause_n in_o point_n of_o law_n upon_o every_o humour_n fancy_n or_o new_o mint_v article_n of_o his_o own_o which_o by_o the_o statute_n of_o 25._o h._n 8._o c._n 19_o and_o the_o 13._o canon_n resolution_n yea_o and_o his_o majesty_n too_o in_o his_o declaration_n before_o the_o 39_o article_n he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o make_v to_o suspend_v excommunicate_a and_o put_v they_o down_o from_o preach_v than_o it_o will_v be_v in_o the_o bishop_n power_n to_o suppress_v and_o alter_v religion_n at_o their_o pleasure_n without_o his_o majesty_n or_o a_o parliament_n assent_v and_o so_o all_o shall_v hang_v upon_o their_o will_n who_o have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o either_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o the_o 13._o realm_n to_o institute_v any_o new_a rite_n ceremony_n article_n canon_n or_o injunction_n or_o to_o alter_v or_o innovate_v any_o thing_n in_o religion_n much_o less_o to_o suspend_v or_o silence_v minister_n wherefore_o in_o case_n our_o prelate_n present_o revoke_v not_o these_o their_o anti-christian_n illegal_a suspension_n inhibition_n injunction_n or_o other_o censure_n to_o hinder_v minister_n from_o preach_v i_o hope_v every_o godly_a minister_n who_o have_v any_o care_n either_o of_o his_o own_o soul_n liberty_n people_n any_o love_n at_o all_o to_o god_n or_o religion_n any_o zeal_n or_o courage_n for_o the_o truth_n or_o desire_v of_o the_o good_a either_o of_o church_n or_o state_n take_v these_o consideration_n into_o his_o thought_n and_o find_v the_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n and_o proceed_n to_o have_v no_o lawful_a warrant_n either_o from_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n will_v ready_o protest_v both_o against_o their_o usurp_a authority_n and_o proceed_n as_o mere_a nullity_n and_o vanity_n and_o proceed_v to_o preach_v pray_v and_o do_v his_o duty_n as_o the_o apostle_n and_o now_o martyr_n do_v of_o old_a without_o any_o fear_n or_o discouragement_n that_o so_o god_n judgement_n plague_n and_o punishment_n which_o the_o prelate_n late_a practice_n with_o the_o minister_n silence_n and_o cowardice_n and_o all_o our_o sin_n have_v draw_v down_o upon_o we_o may_v be_v assuage_v and_o remove_v and_o we_o may_v ever_o retain_v the_o ordinance_n and_o word_n of_o god_n among_o we_o in_o purity_n power_n sincerity_n and_o plenty_n both_o to_o our_o present_a and_o future_a happiness_n i_o shall_v close_v all_o with_o this_o syllogism_n that_o call_v authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o obliterate_v persecute_v suppress_v oppugn_v the_o very_a law_n gospel_n and_o word_n of_o god_n with_o the_o frequent_a powerful_a preach_n preacher_n and_o professor_n thereof_o be_v doubtless_o not_o of_o divine_a right_n or_o institution_n but_o anti-christian_n and_o diabolical_a 1._o thess_n 2._o 14._o 15._o 16._o rom._n 2._o 13._o 10._o john_n 8._o 39_o to_o 48._o 1._o tim._n 3._o 1._o to_o 7._o tit._n 1._o 5._o to_o 10._o but_o this_o do_v the_o call_n authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o lord_n archbishop_n and_o bishop_n as_o the_o premise_n and_o all_o story_n witness_v especial_o our_o book_n of_o martyr_n therefore_o it_o be_v doubtless_o not_o of_o divine_a right_n or_o institution_n but_o anti-christian_n and_o diabolical_a if_o the_o minor_n be_v not_o sufficient_o evidence_v by_o the_o premise_n by_o the_o silence_v of_o many_o minister_n suppress_v of_o so_o many_o lecture_n throughout_o the_o realm_n give_v i_o leave_v to_o instance_n but_o in_o two_o fresh_a example_n more_o the_o first_o in_o doctor_n peirce_n bishop_n of_o bath_n and_o well_n who_o in_o his_o visitation_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o august_n last_v express_o prohibit_v all_o minister_n in_o his_o diocese_n to_o preach_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n afternoon_n threaten_v some_o minister_n to_o suspend_v they_o both_o from_o their_o office_n &_o benefice_n if_o they_o dare_v presume_v to_o preach_v any_o more_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n afternoon_n without_o allege_v any_o law_n or_o canon_n which_o there_o be_v none_o or_o any_o danger_n of_o bring_v or_o spread_v the_o plague_n which_o there_o be_v not_o fear_v but_o only_a out_o of_o his_o malice_n to_o preach_v and_o to_o deprive_v poor_a people_n of_o the_o spiritual_a food_n of_o their_o soul_n to_o affront_v the_o statute_n of_o 5._o and_o 6._o e._n 6._o c._n 1._o 3._o and_o 1._o eli._n c._n 2._o which_o require_v often_o preach_v and_o hear_v of_o the_o gospel_n upon_o every_o sunday_n and_o holy_a day_n and_o prescribe_v preach_v twice_o a_o day_n as_o well_o as_o much_o as_o common-prayer_n couple_v they_o together_o in_o the_o same_o word_n to_o oppugn_v the_o homily_n of_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 3._o 4._o 5._o which_o prescribe_v and_o enforce_v the_o daily_a and_o continual_a preach_v of_o god_n word_n and_o special_o on_o the_o sabbath-daye_n from_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n own_o precept_n and_o example_n to_o make_v all_o minister_n perjure_v who_o at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o ordination_n make_v a_o solemn_a promise_n and_o covenant_n before_o god_n diligent_o and_o painful_o to_o instruct_v their_o people_n &_o never_o to_o give_v over_o preach_v etc._n etc._n as_o the_o book_n of_o ordination_n and_o the_o church_n and_o state_n of_o england_n both_o in_o and_o by_o it_o enjoin_v they_o and_o to_o spite_n s._n paul●_n himselse_n who_o as_o by_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n together_o he_o cease_v not_o to_o warn_v every_o one_o night_n and_o day_n therefore_o he_o preach_v evening_n as_o well_o as_o morning_n public_o &_o from_o house_n to_o house_n acts._n 20._o 20._o 31._o so_o he_o charge_v timothy_n and_o in_o he_o all_o minister_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n instant_o in_o season_n out_o of_o season_n that_o be_v on_z lord_n day_n and_o weekedayes_o morning_n and_o evening_n yea_o and_o at_o midnight_n to_o if_o need_v be_v in_o time_n of_o prosperity_n and_o adversity_n of_o health_n and_o pestilence_n when_o preach_v be_v most_o seasonable_a to_o raise_v man_n from_o their_o sin_n 2._o tim._n 4._o 2._o which_o apostle_n be_v he_o in_o this_o bishop_n and_o some_o other_o of_o his_o brethren_n diocese_n they_o will_v school_v he_o roundly_o for_o such_o good_a doctrine_n and_o stop_v his_o mouth_n to_o prevent_v the_o great_a mischief_n of_o often_o preach_v yea_o 〈◊〉_d our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n be_v now_o among_o our_o prelate_n and_o shall_v 4._o preach_v daily_o in_o our_o temple_n as_o they_o
all_o which_o this_o king_n cause_v to_o be_v draw_v up_o into_o a_o remonstrance_n which_o last_v three_o hour_n read_v and_o on_o the_o 10._o of_o august_n anno_fw-la 1537._o two_o day_n before_o his_o coronation_n he_o cause_v a_o scaffold_n and_o throne_n to_o be_v erect_v in_o the_o most_o public_a place_n of_o hafnia_n the_o metropolis_n of_o denmark_n where_o he_o sit_v with_o all_o his_o noble_n and_o senator_n in_o state_n cause_v this_o remonstrance_n of_o these_o prelate_n detestable_a treason_n conspiracy_n rebellion_n and_o disloyal_a usurpation_n on_o the_o crown_n to_o be_v read_v public_o before_o they_o and_o all_o the_o people_n declare_v that_o for_o they_o he_o have_v imprison_v the_o bishop_n and_o demand_v the_o noble_n and_o people_n whether_o they_o desire_v that_o these_o trayterly_a prelate_n shall_v any_o more_o sway_v the_o common_a weal_n of_o the_o kingdom_n or_o be_v restore_v to_o their_o former_a dignity_n and_o power_n whereupon_o they_o all_o cry_v out_o no_o and_o that_o they_o will_v be_v no_o long_o molest_v with_o this_o antichristian_a trayterly_a generation_n of_o viper_n which_o end_v a_o public_a decree_n or_o act_n of_o state_n be_v make_v by_o their_o unanimous_a consent_n that_o these_o bishop_n shall_v be_v remove_v and_o that_o the_o political_a office_n and_o power_n of_o bishop_n shall_v be_v thenceforth_o whole_o abolish_v out_o of_o the_o realm_n which_o be_v forthwith_o put_v in_o execution_n the_o bishop_n remove_v their_o temporality_n and_o revenue_n confiscate_v to_o the_o king_n and_o seven_o superintendent_o be_v but_o ordinary_a minister_n ordain_v in_o their_o steed_n and_o thus_o be_v denmark_n free_v from_o trayterly_a prelate_n by_o our_o king_n great_a grandfather_n after_o it_o have_v be_v long_o oppress_v by_o they_o anatomia_fw-la anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1571._o john_n hamilton_n archbishop_n of_o saint_n andrew_n in_o scotland_n be_v apprehend_v arraign_v condemn_v and_o hang_v at_o sterling_n by_o matthew_n steward_n then_o viceroy_n during_o king_n james_n his_o minority_n for_o two_o notorious_a suocessive_a treason_n the_o first_o for_o conspire_v and_o have_v a_o chief_a hand_n in_o the_o murder_n of_o henry_n steward_n king_n of_o scot_n father_n to_o our_o late_a king_n james_n of_o famous_a memory_n and_o grandfather_n to_o our_o present_a sovereign_a king_n charles_n anno_fw-la 1565._o &_o for_o cause_v james_n earl_n of_o murra_n viceroy_n of_o scotland_n during_o king_n james_n his_o infancy_n to_o be_v traitorous_o murder_v likewise_o anno_fw-la 1567._o for_o which_o treason_n not_o long_o after_o all_o lord_n bishop_n be_v thrust_v out_o of_o scotland_n by_o king_n james_n and_o the_o whole_a parlement_n consent_v though_o since_o restore_v as_o traitor_n to_o their_o prince_n contrary_a to_o christ_n institution_n as_o the_o chief_a suppressor_n of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o all_o country_n 388._o gustavus_n ericus_n that_o famous_a king_n of_o sweden_n banish_v deprive_v hang_v up_o and_o behead_v some_o of_o his_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n for_o their_o many_o execrable_a treason_n against_o himself_o and_o the_o whole_a realm_n and_o refuse_v to_o be_v crown_v before_o he_o and_o the_o whole_a state_n of_o sweden_n have_v by_o public_a act_n of_o parleament_n though_o with_o much_o opposition_n of_o the_o prelate_n strip_v the_o prelate_n of_o sweden_n of_o their_o excessive_a temporality_n revenue_n wealth_n and_o all_o temporal_a 376._o office_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o make_v they_o oft_o time_n to_o rebel_v against_o their_o prince_n king_n and_o magistrate_n to_o stir_v up_o many_o sedition_n and_o to_o molest_v that_o realm_n with_o almost_o continual_a and_o daily_a war_n and_o schism_n for_o about_o a_o hundred_o year_n then_o last_v pass_v and_o have_v and_o do_v make_v they_o slow_a belly_n and_o unpreach_v prelate_n serviceable_a neither_o to_o god_n nor_o man_n either_o in_o word_n or_o deed_n serve_v rather_o to_o entice_v they_o to_o riot_n pride_n idleness_n and_o sedition_n then_o to_o true_a piety_n and_o have_v no_o title_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o warrant_v they_o since_o which_o the_o prelate_n in_o sweden_n ever_o rebellious_a and_o seditious_a to_o their_o prince_n before_o have_v be_v more_o dutiful_a to_o their_o sovereign_n and_o intermeddle_v only_o with_o their_o spiritual_a function_n which_o they_o altogether_o neglect_v while_o they_o be_v lord_n these_o three_o late_a example_n of_o his_o majesty_n royal_a progenitor_n to_o omit_v catalogue_n other_o as_o they_o may_v instruct_v all_o prince_n how_o false_a that_o idle_a paradox_n of_o the_o prelate_n be_v no_o bishop_n no_o king_n the_o contrary_a be_v a_o experimental_a truth_n and_o how_o little_a trust_n and_o fidelity_n there_o be_v in_o lordly_a prelate_n who_o have_v ever_o be_v treacherous_a to_o their_o sovereign_n when_o and_o where_o they_o have_v bear_v great_a sway_n so_o they_o may_v move_v his_o majesty_n to_o follow_v edward_n father_n latymer_n council_n to_o king_n edward_n the_o 6_o to_o unlord_v all_o our_o lordly_a bishop_n and_o remove_v they_o from_o all_o their_o temporal_a office_n and_o employment_n that_o so_o they_o may_v follow_v their_o spiritual_a ploughtail_n which_o they_o will_v scorn_v to_o do_v as_o long_o as_o they_o be_v lord_n it_o be_v a_o unseemly_a and_o dishonourable_a thing_n for_o lord_n to_o go_v to_o plough_v and_o no_o long_o silence_v their_o fellow_n brethren_n oppress_v molest_v and_o vex_v his_o faithful_a subject_n and_o root_v out_o all_o powerful_a frequent_a preach_a and_o preacher_n of_o god_n word_n as_o now_o they_o do_v from_o which_o kind_n of_o lordly_a prelate_n with_o their_o antichristian_a romish_n practice_n and_o innovation_n now_o on_o foot_n good_a lord_n deliver_v we_o since_o they_o have_v neither_o god_n nor_o the_o king_n law_n to_o authorise_v they_o or_o support_v that_o usurp_a papal_a tyrannical_a jurisdiction_n which_o now_o they_o exercise_v under_o which_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n groan_n and_o languish_v desire_v to_o be_v unburthen_v of_o it_o as_o a_o intolerable_a yoke_n of_o bondage_n which_o it_o can_v no_o long_o bear_v as_o now_o it_o be_v aggrevate_v i_o shall_v therefore_o close_v up_o all_o with_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o paris_n under_o lewes_n and_o lotharius_n an._n 829._o 374._o l._n 1._o c._n 23._o worthy_a our_o domineer_a proud_a prelate_n most_o serious_a rumination_n quia_fw-la sunt_fw-la plérique_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la paternum_fw-la affectum_fw-la circa_fw-la gregem_fw-la sibi_fw-la comissum_fw-la sed_fw-la quendam_fw-la exercere_fw-la videntur_fw-la dominatum_fw-la eumque_fw-la non_fw-la ut_fw-la dominicum_fw-la sed_fw-la flatibus_fw-la vertosae_fw-la arrogantiae_fw-la inflati_fw-la ut_fw-la suum_fw-la proprium_fw-la tractare_fw-la non_fw-la verentur_fw-la quantum_fw-la a_o paternitatis_fw-la officijs_fw-la aberrent_fw-la subter_fw-la collecta_fw-la 21._o documenta_fw-la declarant_fw-la dominus_fw-la in_o evangelio_n si_fw-mi diligis_fw-la i_o pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la menander_n as_o inquit_fw-la non_fw-la tu_fw-la as_o item_n qui_fw-fr major_a 20._o est_fw-la vestrum_fw-la erit_fw-la minister_v vester_fw-ge et_fw-la non_fw-la post_fw-la multa_fw-la non_fw-la ita_fw-la erit_fw-la inquit_fw-la inter_fw-la vos_fw-la sed_fw-la qui_fw-la voluerit_fw-la inter_fw-la vos_fw-la major_a fieri_fw-la 5._o erit_fw-la vester_fw-ge servus_n petrus_n neque_fw-la dominantes_fw-la in_o clero_fw-la sed_fw-la forma_fw-la facti_fw-la gregis_fw-la ex_fw-la animo_fw-la solomon_n principem_fw-la te_fw-la constituerunt_fw-la nolli_fw-it extolli_fw-la sed_fw-la esto_fw-la in_o eye_n quasi_fw-la unus_fw-la ex_fw-la ipsis_fw-la fulgentius_n 32._o in_o libro_fw-la de_fw-la veritate_fw-la praedestinationis_fw-la et_fw-la gratiae_fw-la non_fw-la ideò_fw-la inquit_fw-la se_fw-la solùm_fw-la quilibet_fw-la episcopus_fw-la vas_fw-la misericordiae_fw-la putet_fw-la in_o gloria_fw-la praeparatum_fw-la quia_fw-la pontificali_fw-la mitra_n militia_n fungitur_fw-la sed_fw-la si_fw-la progrege_fw-la sibi_fw-la redito_fw-la solicitus_fw-la semper_fw-la invigilet_fw-la et_fw-la praedicet_fw-la verbo_fw-la instet_fw-la opportunè_fw-la impertunè_fw-la arguat_fw-la obsecret_fw-la 4._o increpet_fw-la in_o omni_fw-la patientia_fw-la et_fw-la doctrina_fw-la nec_fw-la sibi_fw-la dominatum_fw-la superbus_fw-la usurpare_fw-la contendat_fw-la sed_fw-la apostolicis_fw-la informatus_fw-la eloquijs_fw-la et_fw-la exemplis_fw-la servum_fw-la se_fw-la cunctis_fw-la exhibeat_fw-la neque_fw-la sedis_fw-la illius_fw-la altitudine_fw-la collatum_fw-la sibi_fw-la gaudeat_fw-la temporale_fw-la fastigium_fw-la sed_fw-la humili_fw-la cord_n fidelibus_fw-la praebeat_fw-la bonae_fw-la conversation_n exemplum_fw-la quicunque_fw-la igitur_fw-la sacris_fw-la officijs_fw-la servituri_fw-la sub_fw-la quolibet_fw-la ordine_fw-la applicantur_fw-la dignum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la illius_fw-la dicantur_fw-la cujus_fw-la servitio_fw-la mancipantur_fw-la quia_fw-la ergò_fw-la temeritate_fw-la immò_fw-la praesumptvosavanitate_fw-la quilibet_fw-la praelatorum_fw-la dicere_fw-la praesumit_fw-la illa_fw-la congregatio_fw-la mea_fw-la est_fw-la aut_fw-la ille_fw-la praesbyter_n vel_fw-la clericus_fw-la meus_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la nonsitillius_n sed_fw-la illius_n cvi_o dicatus_n est_fw-la proinde_fw-la quia_fw-la be_v inolitus_fw-la sesus_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la non_fw-la concordat_fw-la regulae_fw-la corrigatur_fw-la necesse_fw-la est._n christian_n reader_n this_o passage_n shall_v
of_o the_o homily_n against_o disobedience_n &_o wilful_a rebellion_n fox_n act_n and_o monument_n throughout_o catalogue_n testium_fw-la veritatis_fw-la veritatis_fw-la com._n in_o phil_n 1._o 1._o in_o tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o in_o 1._o tim_n 3_o &_o 4._o 4._o de_fw-fr quest._n armenorum_n l._n 11._o c._n 1._o to_o 8._o 8._o balaeus_n cent._n 8._o c._n 19_o 19_o fox_n act_v monument_n p._n 9_o 2._o 973._o 973._o on_o the_o 8_o commandment_n commandment_n defence_n of_o the_o apology_n part_n 2._o c._n 3._o divis_n 1._o 5._o p._n 85._o 99_o 100_o 101._o etc._n etc._n 9_o divis_n 1_o p._n 196._o 202._o 202._o poor_a man_n library_n part_n 1._o f._n 95._o 96._o 96._o exposit_n on_o aggius_n vers_fw-la 1._o &_o 2._o 2._o against_o cartwright_n p._n 389._o 389._o of_o the_o prince_n supremacy_n p._n 359._o 359._o maith_n 6._o 24._o lu._n 16._o 13._o 1._o john_n 2._o 15._o 16._o 16._o see_v chownaeus_n collect_v theolog._n and_o shelford_n his_o 5._o treatise_n treatise_n pag._n 2._o 43._o 44._o 44._o see_v henry_n stalbridge_n his_o exhortatory_n epistle_n william_n wraghton_n his_o hunt_v of_o the_o romish_a fox_n roderick_n mors_fw-la his_o complaint_n c._n 23._o master_n tyndal_n his_o obedience_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n and_o practise_v of_o popish_a prelate_n fox_n act_n and_o monument_n pa●_n 414._o 514._o 516._o 518._o master_n whethenhall_n his_o discourse_n of_o the_o corruption_n now_o in_o question_n with_o other_o other_o matth._n 7._o 26._o 27._o 27._o see_v sir_n john_n davis_n his_o irish_a report_n f._n 97._o 98_o a_o excellent_a passage_n to_o this_o purpose_n q_o math._n 7._o 27._o 27._o doctor_n barnes_n article_n artic._n 8._o p._n 211._o master_n tyndal_n practise_v of_o popish_a prelate_n p._n 342_o 343._o etc._n etc._n and_o obedience_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n man_n 37._o h._n 8._o c._n 17._o 17._o what_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n be_v p._n 266._o u_fw-la prov._n 16._o 18._o 18._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 5._o 5._o psa_fw-la 119._o 119._o 119._o see_v thomas_n be●●_n on_o his_o supplication_n vol._n 3._o of_o his_o work_n in_o folio_n f._n 21._o to_o 25._o a_o most_o excellent_a passage_n to_o this_o purpose_n suitable_a to_o our_o time_n time_n magna_fw-la charta_fw-la c._n 29._o the_o petition_n of_o right_n 3._o caroli_n and_o other_o statute_n in_o ractall_n accusation_n accusation_n 1._o cor._n 1._o 27._o 28._o 29._o 29._o in_o master_n thomas_n brewer_n doctor_n bastweeke_n and_o sundry_a other_o case_n case_n an._n melvini_n patricij_fw-la adamsoni_fw-la palinodia_fw-la print_v an._n 1630._o 1630._o see_v master_n tyndals_n obedience_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n the_o holy_a practice_n of_o popish_a prelate_n prelate_n 1._o tim._n 3._o 2._o 3._o 2_o tim._n 4._o 1._o to_o 5_o tit_n 1._o &_o 2._o 1_o pet._n 〈◊〉_d 2._o 3._o 3._o 31._o h_o s._n c_o 9_o 37._o h._n 8_o c._n 17._o 1._o e_o 6._o c._n 〈◊〉_d &_o all_o the_o bishop_n patent_n for_o their_o consecration_n and_o cong_n cong_n not_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n who_o can_v make_v no_o chancellor_n vicar_n general_n commissary_n or_o official_o unless_o the_o king_n by_o his_o special_a patent_n give_v they_o power_n so_o to_o do_v in_o express_a word_n as_o these_o statute_n evidence_n and_o the_o bishop_n patent_n in_o edward_n the_o 6._o reign_v reign_v matth._n 22._o 20._o 21._o sir_n john_n davis_n his_o irish_a report_n p._n 97._o 98._o 98._o 26._o h._n 8._o c._n 1._o 37._o h._n 8._o c._n 17._o 1._o e._n 6._o c._n 2._o 1._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 5._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 8._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 1._o in_o case_n they_o have_v 〈…〉_z character_n or_o commission_n under_o his_o majesty_n seal_n which_o all_o of_o they_o now_o want_v and_o so_o be_v mere_a usurper_n on_o his_o majesty_n crown_n and_o ecclesiastical_a prerogative_n in_o keep_v confistory_n visitation_n and_o exercise_v episcopal_a jurisdiction_n in_o their_o own_o name_n with_o patent_n or_o commission_n from_o the_o king_n king_n sunday_n no_o sabath_n p._n 〈◊〉_d &_o 44._o 44._o w._n bray_n bray_n see_v antiquit_n eccles_n brit._n bodwines_n conversion_n of_o brittany_n with_o other_o who_o write_v of_o king_n ●ucius_fw-la and_o speed_v history_n book_n 6._o c._n 9_o p._n 73._o to_o 82._o 82._o defence_n of_o the_o apolog._n part_n 5._o c._n 1._o divis_n 1._o artic._n 1._o divis_n 24._o 24._o act_n and_o monum_fw-la f._n 2._o p._n 9●_n to_o 120._o 120._o speed_v hist._n l._n 6._o c._n 9_o 9_o page_n 43._o 43._o see_v quest._n 1._o object_n 6._o answer_v 2._o and_o most_o of_o our_o learned_a writer_n who_o have_v affirm_v that_o peter_n be_v never_o at_o rome_n much_o less_o bishop_n there_o upon_o such_o ground_n as_o this_o doctor_n can_v answer_v answer_v epiphanius_n contr._n haereses_fw-la l._n 1._o haer._n 27._o col_fw-fr 88_o 89._o eusebius_n eccles_n hist._n l._n 3._o c._n 21._o irenaeus_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o 4._o 5._o write_v that_o both_o of_o they_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n at_o once_o and_o not_o peter_n the_o sole_a bishop_n and_o eusebius_n write_v paul_n in_o the_o first_o place_n before_o peter_n peter_n see_v euseb_n s_o 3._o c._n 10._o 11._o or_o so●r_o schol._n eccl._n hist._n l._n 7._o c._n 3_o 3_o 28._o h._n 8._o c._n 10._o 1._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 1._o see_v rastall_a tit._n rome_n rome_n oratio_fw-la ad_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 50._o episcopus_fw-la in_o his_o life_n before_o his_o work_n socrates_n eccles_n hist_n l._n 5._o c_o 7._o p_o isidor_n pe'usiotae_n epist_n l._n 3_o epist_n 223._o 223._o nicephorus_n eccles_n hist._n l._n 10._o c_o 11._o 11._o socr._n scholast_n l._n 4._o c._n 18._o in_o the_o greek_a 23._o niceph._n eccles_n hist._n l._n 11._o c._n 37._o petrus_n blesensis_n epist_n 23._o 23._o socrates_n eccl._n hist_n l._n 4._o c._n 18._o niceph._n l._n 11._o c._n 37._o 37._o nicephori_n gregorae_fw-la hist_n rom._n l._n 3._o c._n 1._o 2._o f._n 9_o cent._n magd._n 13._o col._n 982._o 982._o cent._n magd._n 10._o col._n 599._o 599._o cent._n magd._n 6._o col._n 644._o 644._o niceph._n greg._n hist_o rom._n l._n 4._o 2._o 1._o f._n 11._o 13_o 14._o l._n 5._o fol._n 16._o l._n 6._o f._n 20._o 21._o 22._o 24._o l._n 7._o f._n 29._o l._n 8_o f._n 31._o cent._n magd._n 8._o col._n 669._o 672._o cent._n 11._o col._n 516._o 518._o cent._n 12._o col._n 1384._o cent._n 13._o col._n 932._o 983._o 983._o vincentius_n spec._n hist._n l._n 24._o c._n 25._o cent._n magd._n 7._o col._n 502._o 507._o 508._o cent._n 8._o col._n 763._o 786._o cent._n 10._o col._n 586._o cent._n 11._o col._n 515._o 576._o cent._n 12._o col._n 1387._o 1458._o 1468._o 1484._o 1486._o 1491._o 1519._o 1530._o 1544._o cent._n 13._o col._n 1042._o 1052._o 1057._o 1062._o 1078._o 1092._o 1093._o 1094._o 1102._o 1146._o 1146._o godwine_n catalogue_n of_o bishop_n london_n 1615._o p._n 70._o 113._o 118._o 120._o 188._o 192._o 219._o 305._o 306._o 313._o 318._o 323._o 336._o 353._o 397._o 413._o 414._o 437._o 438_o 446._o 447._o 456._o 477._o 487._o 504._o 508._o 532._o 536._o 543._o 559._o 565._o 567._o 581._o 596._o 629._o 631._o 632._o 635._o 636._o 654._o 655._o 675._o 676._o 676._o fox_n act_n and_o monument_n p._n 1578._o his_o 2._o 3._o and_o 4._o sermon_n before_o king_n edward_n edward_n epist._n 2._o 83._o 85._o in_o tit._n 1._o phil._n 1._o &_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 3._o in_o eph._n 4._o &_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 3._o rom._n 1._o in_o phil._n hom._n 11._o in_o 1._o tim_n 3_o hom._n 2._o in_o tit._n 1._o 1._o ep._n 19_o 83._o 85._o quaest._n ex_fw-la utroque_fw-la impert_v 100_o 101._o 101._o in_o phil._n 1._o 1._o tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o 1._o tim._n c._n 3._o &_o 4._o acts._n 15._o &_o 20._o 17._o 28._o 28._o ori._n l._n 7._o c._n 12._o l._n 8._o c._n 5._o de_fw-fr ecclesiast_n officiis_n l._n 2._o c._n 7._o 7._o de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la officiis_fw-la l._n 2._o c_o 35._o 36._o 36._o in_o acts._n 15._o &_o 20._o 1._o tim_n 3_o phil._n 1._o 1._o tit._n 1._o 5._o 7_o 7_o distinct_a 80._o 93._o causa_fw-la 2._o qu._n 7._o 7._o decretal_a pars_fw-la 5._o c._n 58._o 59_o 72._o 107._o 143._o 144._o 144._o sent._n l._n 4._o distinct._n 24._o 24._o in_o phil._n 1._o tit._n 1._o &_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 3._o amalarius_fw-la fortunatus_n de_fw-fr eccles_n officiis_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 13._o basilius_n magnus_n in_o c._n 3._o isayae_n nizianzen_n orat._n 9_o 13._o 15._o 21._o 28._o 28._o quote_v by_o gersonius_fw-la bucerus_n the_o petition_n to_o queen_n elizabeth_n master_n parker_n &_o doctor_n bastweek_n book_n book_n matth._n 20_o 20_o to_o 29_o marc._n 10_o 35_o to_o 48_o lu._n 22._o 23_o to_o 28._o 28._o 1._o pet._n 5_o 1_o to_z 6_o acts._n 14_o 23_o c._n 20_o 17_o 28_o phil._n l_o 1_o tit._n 1_o 5_o 7._o 1._o tim._n 3_o etc._n etc._n c._n 5_o 17_o c._n 4._o 14_o jam._n 5_o 14_o m_o see_v bp._n jewel_n defence_n of_o the_o apology_n part_n 2_o c._n